Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Girl on the Boat
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • Project Gutenberg's The Girl on the Boat, by Pelham Grenville Wodehouse
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: The Girl on the Boat
  • Author: Pelham Grenville Wodehouse
  • Release Date: March 1, 2007 [EBook #20717]
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GIRL ON THE BOAT ***
  • Produced by Martin Pettit and the Online Distributed
  • Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
  • THE GIRL ON THE BOAT
  • BY
  • P. G. WODEHOUSE
  • HERBERT JENKINS LIMITED
  • 3 YORK STREET LONDON S.W.1
  • [Illustration: A HERBERT JENKINS BOOK]
  • _Tenth printing, completing 95,781 copies_
  • Printed in Great Britain by Butler & Tanner Ltd., Frome and London
  • WHAT THIS STORY IS ABOUT
  • It was Sam Marlowe's fate to fall in love with a girl on the R.M.S.
  • "Atlantic" (New York to Southampton) who had ideals. She was looking for
  • a man just like Sir Galahad, and refused to be put off with any inferior
  • substitute. A lucky accident on the first day of the voyage placed Sam
  • for the moment in the Galahad class, but he could not stay the pace.
  • He follows Billie Bennett "around," scheming, blundering and hoping, so
  • does the parrot faced young man Bream Mortimer, Sam's rival.
  • There is a somewhat hectic series of events at Windles, a country house
  • in Hampshire, where Billie's ideals still block the way and Sam comes on
  • in spite of everything.
  • Then comes the moment when Billie.... It is a Wodehouse novel in every
  • sense of the term.
  • ONE MOMENT!
  • Before my friend Mr. Jenkins--wait a minute, Herbert--before my friend
  • Mr. Jenkins formally throws this book open to the public, I should like
  • to say a few words. You, sir, and you, and you at the back, if you will
  • kindly restrain your impatience.... There is no need to jostle. There
  • will be copies for all. Thank you. I shall not detain you long.
  • I wish to clear myself of a possible charge of plagiarism. You smile.
  • Ah! but you don't know. You don't realise how careful even a splendid
  • fellow like myself has to be. You wouldn't have me go down to posterity
  • as Pelham the Pincher, would you? No! Very well, then. By the time this
  • volume is in the hands of the customers, everybody will, of course, have
  • read Mr. J. Storer Clouston's "The Lunatic at Large Again." (Those who
  • are chumps enough to miss it deserve no consideration.) Well, both the
  • hero of "The Lunatic" and my "Sam Marlowe" try to get out of a tight
  • corner by hiding in a suit of armour in the hall of a country-house.
  • Looks fishy, yes? And yet I call on Heaven to witness that I am
  • innocent, innocent. And, if the word of Northumberland Avenue Wodehouse
  • is not sufficient, let me point out that this story and Mr. Clouston's
  • appeared simultaneously in serial form in their respective magazines.
  • This proves, I think, that at these cross-roads, at any rate, there has
  • been no dirty work. All right, Herb., you can let 'em in now.
  • P. G. WODEHOUSE.
  • Constitutional Club,
  • Northumberland Avenue.
  • CONTENTS
  • CHAPTER PAGE
  • I. A DISTURBING MORNING 11
  • II. GALLANT RESCUE BY WELL-DRESSED YOUNG MAN 27
  • III. SAM PAVES THE WAY 56
  • IV. SAM CLICKS 69
  • V. PERSECUTION OF EUSTACE 95
  • VI. SCENE AT A SHIP'S CONCERT 104
  • VII. SUNDERED HEARTS 111
  • VIII. SIR MALLABY OFFERS A SUGGESTION 126
  • IX. ROUGH WORK AT A DINNER TABLE 144
  • X. TROUBLE AT WINDLES 159
  • XI. MR. BENNETT HAS A BAD NIGHT 180
  • XII. THE LURID PAST OF JOHN PETERS 193
  • XIII. SHOCKS ALL ROUND 207
  • XIV. STRONG REMARKS BY A FATHER 217
  • XV. DRAMA AT A COUNTRY HOUSE 227
  • XVI. WEBSTER, FRIEND IN NEED 242
  • XVII. A CROWDED NIGHT 257
  • THE GIRL ON THE BOAT
  • CHAPTER I
  • A DISTURBING MORNING
  • Through the curtained windows of the furnished flat which Mrs. Horace
  • Hignett had rented for her stay in New York, rays of golden sunlight
  • peeped in like the foremost spies of some advancing army. It was a fine
  • summer morning. The hands of the Dutch clock in the hall pointed to
  • thirteen minutes past nine; those of the ormolu clock in the
  • sitting-room to eleven minutes past ten; those of the carriage clock on
  • the bookshelf to fourteen minutes to six. In other words, it was exactly
  • eight; and Mrs. Hignett acknowledged the fact by moving her head on the
  • pillow, opening her eyes, and sitting up in bed. She always woke at
  • eight precisely.
  • Was this Mrs. Hignett _the_ Mrs. Hignett, the world-famous writer on
  • Theosophy, the author of "The Spreading Light," "What of the Morrow,"
  • and all the rest of that well-known series? I'm glad you asked me. Yes,
  • she was. She had come over to America on a lecturing tour.
  • About this time there was a good deal of suffering in the United States,
  • for nearly every boat that arrived from England was bringing a fresh
  • swarm of British lecturers to the country. Novelists, poets, scientists,
  • philosophers, and plain, ordinary bores; some herd instinct seemed to
  • affect them all simultaneously. It was like one of those great race
  • movements of the Middle Ages. Men and women of widely differing views on
  • religion, art, politics, and almost every other subject; on this one
  • point the intellectuals of Great Britain were single-minded, that there
  • was easy money to be picked up on the lecture-platforms of America, and
  • that they might just as well grab it as the next person.
  • Mrs. Hignett had come over with the first batch of immigrants; for,
  • spiritual as her writings were, there was a solid streak of business
  • sense in this woman, and she meant to get hers while the getting was
  • good. She was half way across the Atlantic with a complete itinerary
  • booked, before ninety per cent. of the poets and philosophers had
  • finished sorting out their clean collars and getting their photographs
  • taken for the passport.
  • She had not left England without a pang, for departure had involved
  • sacrifices. More than anything else in the world she loved her charming
  • home, Windles, in the county of Hampshire, for so many years the seat of
  • the Hignett family. Windles was as the breath of life to her. Its shady
  • walks, its silver lake, its noble elms, the old grey stone of its
  • walls--these were bound up with her very being. She felt that she
  • belonged to Windles, and Windles to her. Unfortunately, as a matter of
  • cold, legal accuracy, it did not. She did but hold it in trust for her
  • son, Eustace, until such time as he should marry and take possession of
  • it himself. There were times when the thought of Eustace marrying and
  • bringing a strange woman to Windles chilled Mrs. Hignett to her very
  • marrow. Happily, her firm policy of keeping her son permanently under
  • her eye at home and never permitting him to have speech with a female
  • below the age of fifty, had averted the peril up till now.
  • Eustace had accompanied his mother to America. It was his faint snores
  • which she could hear in the adjoining room as, having bathed and
  • dressed, she went down the hall to where breakfast awaited her. She
  • smiled tolerantly. She had never desired to convert her son to her own
  • early-rising habits, for, apart from not allowing him to call his soul
  • his own, she was an indulgent mother. Eustace would get up at half-past
  • nine, long after she had finished breakfast, read her correspondence,
  • and started her duties for the day.
  • Breakfast was on the table in the sitting-room, a modest meal of rolls,
  • porridge, and imitation coffee. Beside the pot containing this
  • hell-brew, was a little pile of letters. Mrs. Hignett opened them as she
  • ate. The majority were from disciples and dealt with matters of purely
  • theosophical interest. There was an invitation from the Butterfly Club,
  • asking her to be the guest of honour at their weekly dinner. There was a
  • letter from her brother Mallaby--Sir Mallaby Marlowe, the eminent London
  • lawyer--saying that his son Sam, of whom she had never approved, would
  • be in New York shortly, passing through on his way back to England, and
  • hoping that she would see something of him. Altogether a dull mail. Mrs.
  • Hignett skimmed through it without interest, setting aside one or two of
  • the letters for Eustace, who acted as her unpaid secretary, to answer
  • later in the day.
  • She had just risen from the table, when there was a sound of voices in
  • the hall, and presently the domestic staff, a gaunt Irish lady of
  • advanced years, entered the room.
  • "Ma'am, there was a gentleman."
  • Mrs. Hignett was annoyed. Her mornings were sacred.
  • "Didn't you tell him I was not to be disturbed?"
  • "I did not. I loosed him into the parlour." The staff remained for a
  • moment in melancholy silence, then resumed. "He says he's your nephew.
  • His name's Marlowe."
  • Mrs. Hignett experienced no diminution of her annoyance. She had not
  • seen her nephew Sam for ten years, and would have been willing to extend
  • the period. She remembered him as an untidy small boy who once or twice,
  • during his school holidays, had disturbed the cloistral peace of Windles
  • with his beastly presence. However, blood being thicker than water, and
  • all that sort of thing, she supposed she would have to give him five
  • minutes. She went into the sitting-room, and found there a young man who
  • looked more or less like all other young men, though perhaps rather
  • fitter than most. He had grown a good deal since she had last met him,
  • as men so often do between the ages of fifteen and twenty-five, and was
  • now about six feet in height, about forty inches round the chest, and in
  • weight about thirteen stone. He had a brown and amiable face, marred at
  • the moment by an expression of discomfort somewhat akin to that of a cat
  • in a strange alley.
  • "Hullo, Aunt Adeline!" he said awkwardly.
  • "Well, Samuel!" said Mrs. Hignett.
  • There was a pause. Mrs. Hignett, who was not fond of young men and
  • disliked having her mornings broken into, was thinking that he had not
  • improved in the slightest degree since their last meeting; and Sam, who
  • imagined that he had long since grown to man's estate and put off
  • childish things, was embarrassed to discover that his aunt still
  • affected him as of old. That is to say, she made him feel as if he had
  • omitted to shave and, in addition to that, had swallowed some drug which
  • had caused him to swell unpleasantly, particularly about the hands and
  • feet.
  • "Jolly morning," said Sam, perseveringly.
  • "So I imagine. I have not yet been out."
  • "Thought I'd look in and see how you were."
  • "That was very kind of you. The morning is my busy time, but ... yes,
  • that was very kind of you!"
  • There was another pause.
  • "How do you like America?" said Sam.
  • "I dislike it exceedingly."
  • "Yes? Well, of course, some people do. Prohibition and all that.
  • Personally, it doesn't affect me. I can take it or leave it alone. I
  • like America myself," said Sam. "I've had a wonderful time. Everybody's
  • treated me like a rich uncle. I've been in Detroit, you know, and they
  • practically gave me the city and asked me if I'd like another to take
  • home in my pocket. Never saw anything like it. I might have been the
  • missing heir! I think America's the greatest invention on record."
  • "And what brought you to America?" said Mrs. Hignett, unmoved by this
  • rhapsody.
  • "Oh, I came over to play golf. In a tournament, you know."
  • "Surely at your age," said Mrs. Hignett, disapprovingly, "you could be
  • better occupied. Do you spend your whole time playing golf?"
  • "Oh, no! I play cricket a bit and shoot a bit and I swim a good lot and
  • I still play football occasionally."
  • "I wonder your father does not insist on your doing some useful work."
  • "He is beginning to harp on the subject rather. I suppose I shall take a
  • stab at it sooner or later. Father says I ought to get married, too."
  • "He is perfectly right."
  • "I suppose old Eustace will be getting hitched up one of these days?"
  • said Sam.
  • Mrs. Hignett started violently.
  • "Why do you say that?"
  • "Eh?"
  • "What makes you say that?"
  • "Oh, well, he's a romantic sort of fellow. Writes poetry, and all that."
  • "There is no likelihood at all of Eustace marrying. He is of a shy and
  • retiring temperament, and sees few women. He is almost a recluse."
  • Sam was aware of this, and had frequently regretted it. He had always
  • been fond of his cousin in that half-amused and rather patronising way
  • in which men of thews and sinews are fond of the weaker brethren who run
  • more to pallor and intellect; and he had always felt that if Eustace had
  • not had to retire to Windles to spend his life with a woman whom from
  • his earliest years he had always considered the Empress of the Washouts,
  • much might have been made of him. Both at school and at Oxford, Eustace
  • had been--if not a sport--at least a decidedly cheery old bean. Sam
  • remembered Eustace at school, breaking gas globes with a slipper in a
  • positively rollicking manner. He remembered him at Oxford playing up to
  • him manfully at the piano on the occasion when he had done that
  • imitation of Frank Tinney which had been such a hit at the Trinity
  • smoker. Yes, Eustace had had the makings of a pretty sound egg, and it
  • was too bad that he had allowed his mother to coop him up down in the
  • country, miles away from anywhere.
  • "Eustace is returning to England on Saturday," said Mrs. Hignett. She
  • spoke a little wistfully. She had not been parted from her son since he
  • had come down from Oxford; and she would have liked to keep him with her
  • till the end of her lecturing tour. That, however, was out of the
  • question. It was imperative that, while she was away, he should be at
  • Windles. Nothing would have induced her to leave the place at the mercy
  • of servants who might trample over the flowerbeds, scratch the polished
  • floors, and forget to cover up the canary at night. "He sails on the
  • 'Atlantic.'"
  • "That's splendid!" said Sam. "I'm sailing on the 'Atlantic' myself. I'll
  • go down to the office and see if we can't have a state-room together.
  • But where is he going to live when he gets to England?"
  • "Where is he going to live? Why, at Windles, of course. Where else?"
  • "But I thought you were letting Windles for the summer?"
  • Mrs. Hignett stared.
  • "Letting Windles!" She spoke as one might address a lunatic. "What put
  • that extraordinary idea into your head?"
  • "I thought father said something about your letting the place to some
  • American."
  • "Nothing of the kind!"
  • It seemed to Sam that his aunt spoke somewhat vehemently, even
  • snappishly, in correcting what was a perfectly natural mistake. He could
  • not know that the subject of letting Windles for the summer was one
  • which had long since begun to infuriate Mrs. Hignett. People had
  • certainly asked her to let Windles. In fact, people had pestered her.
  • There was a rich, fat man, an American named Bennett, whom she had met
  • just before sailing at her brother's house in London. Invited down to
  • Windles for the day, Mr. Bennett had fallen in love with the place, and
  • had begged her to name her own price. Not content with this, he had
  • pursued her with his pleadings by means of the wireless telegraph while
  • she was on the ocean, and had not given up the struggle even when she
  • reached New York. She had not been in America two days when there had
  • arrived a Mr. Mortimer, bosom friend of Mr. Bennett, carrying on the
  • matter where the other had left off. For a whole week Mr. Mortimer had
  • tried to induce her to reconsider her decision, and had only stopped
  • because he had had to leave for England himself, to join his friend. And
  • even then the thing had gone on. Indeed, this very morning, among the
  • letters on Mrs. Hignett's table, the buff envelope of a cable from Mr.
  • Bennett had peeped out, nearly spoiling her breakfast. No wonder, then,
  • that Sam's allusion to the affair had caused the authoress of "The
  • Spreading Light" momentarily to lose her customary calm.
  • "Nothing will induce me ever to let Windles," she said with finality,
  • and rose significantly. Sam, perceiving that the audience was at an
  • end--and glad of it--also got up.
  • "Well, I think I'll be going down and seeing about that state-room" he
  • said.
  • "Certainly. I am a little busy just now, preparing notes for my next
  • lecture."
  • "Of course, yes. Mustn't interrupt you. I suppose you're having a great
  • time, gassing away--I mean--well, good-bye!"
  • "Good-bye!"
  • Mrs. Hignett, frowning, for the interview had ruffled her and disturbed
  • that equable frame of mind which is so vital to the preparation of
  • lectures on Theosophy, sat down at the writing-table and began to go
  • through the notes which she had made overnight. She had hardly succeeded
  • in concentrating herself when the door opened to admit the daughter of
  • Erin once more.
  • "Ma'am, there was a gentleman."
  • "This is intolerable!" cried Mrs. Hignett. "Did you tell him that I was
  • busy?"
  • "I did not. I loosed him into the dining-room."
  • "Is he a reporter from one of the newspapers?"
  • "He is not. He has spats and a tall-shaped hat. His name is Bream
  • Mortimer."
  • "Bream Mortimer!"
  • "Yes, ma'am. He handed me a bit of a kyard, but I dropped it, being
  • slippy from the dishes."
  • Mrs. Hignett strode to the door with a forbidding expression. This, as
  • she had justly remarked, was intolerable. She remembered Bream Mortimer.
  • He was the son of the Mr. Mortimer who wanted Windles. This visit could
  • only have to do with the subject of Windles, and she went into the
  • dining-room in a state of cold fury, determined to squash the Mortimer
  • family, in the person of their New York representative, once and for
  • all.
  • "Good morning, Mr. Mortimer."
  • Bream Mortimer was tall and thin. He had small bright eyes and a sharply
  • curving nose. He looked much more like a parrot than most parrots do. It
  • gave strangers a momentary shock of surprise when they saw Bream
  • Mortimer in restaurants, eating roast beef. They had the feeling that he
  • would have preferred sunflower seeds.
  • "Morning, Mrs. Hignett."
  • "Please sit down."
  • Bream Mortimer looked as though he would rather have hopped on to a
  • perch, but he sat down. He glanced about the room with gleaming, excited
  • eyes.
  • "Mrs. Hignett, I must have a word with you alone!"
  • "You _are_ having a word with me alone."
  • "I hardly know how to begin."
  • "Then let me help you. It is quite impossible. I will never consent."
  • Bream Mortimer started.
  • "Then you have heard about it?"
  • "I have heard about nothing else since I met Mr. Bennett in London. Mr.
  • Bennett talked about nothing else. Your father talked about nothing
  • else. And now," cried Mrs. Hignett, fiercely, "you come and try to
  • re-open the subject. Once and for all, nothing will alter my decision.
  • No money will induce me to let my house."
  • "But I didn't come about that!"
  • "You did not come about Windles?"
  • "Good Lord, no!"
  • "Then will you kindly tell me why you have come?"
  • Bream Mortimer seemed embarrassed. He wriggled a little, and moved his
  • arms as if he were trying to flap them.
  • "You know," he said, "I'm not a man who butts into other people's
  • affairs...." He stopped.
  • "No?" said Mrs. Hignett.
  • Bream began again.
  • "I'm not a man who gossips with valets...."
  • "No?"
  • "I'm not a man who...."
  • Mrs. Hignett was never a very patient woman.
  • "Let us take all your negative qualities for granted," she said curtly.
  • "I have no doubt that there are many things which you do not do. Let us
  • confine ourselves to issues of definite importance. What is it, if you
  • have no objection to concentrating your attention on that for a moment,
  • that you wish to see me about?"
  • "This marriage."
  • "What marriage?"
  • "Your son's marriage."
  • "My son is not married."
  • "No, but he's going to be. At eleven o'clock this morning at the Little
  • Church Round the Corner!"
  • Mrs. Hignett stared.
  • "Are you mad?"
  • "Well, I'm not any too well pleased, I'm bound to say," admitted Mr.
  • Mortimer. "You see, darn it all, I'm in love with the girl myself!"
  • "Who is this girl?"
  • "Have been for years. I'm one of those silent, patient fellows who hang
  • around and look a lot but never tell their love...."
  • "Who is this girl who has entrapped my son?"
  • "I've always been one of those men who...."
  • "Mr. Mortimer! With your permission we will take your positive
  • qualities, also, for granted. In fact, we will not discuss you at all.
  • You come to me with this absurd story...."
  • "Not absurd. Honest fact. I had it from my valet who had it from her
  • maid."
  • "Will you please tell me who is the girl my misguided son wishes to
  • marry?"
  • "I don't know that I'd call him misguided," said Mr. Mortimer, as one
  • desiring to be fair. "I think he's a right smart picker! She's such a
  • corking girl, you know. We were children together, and I've loved her
  • for years. Ten years at least. But you know how it is--somehow one never
  • seems to get in line for a proposal. I thought I saw an opening in the
  • summer of nineteen-twelve, but it blew over. I'm not one of these
  • smooth, dashing chaps, you see, with a great line of talk. I'm not...."
  • "If you will kindly," said Mrs. Hignett impatiently, "postpone this
  • essay in psycho-analysis to some future occasion, I shall be greatly
  • obliged. I am waiting to hear the name of the girl my son wishes to
  • marry."
  • "Haven't I told you?" said Mr. Mortimer, surprised. "That's odd. I
  • haven't. It's funny how one doesn't do the things one thinks one does.
  • I'm the sort of man...."
  • "What is her name?"
  • "... the sort of man who...."
  • "What is her name?"
  • "Bennett."
  • "Bennett? Wilhelmina Bennett? The daughter of Mr. Rufus Bennett? The
  • red-haired girl I met at lunch one day at your father's house?"
  • "That's it. You're a great guesser. I think you ought to stop the
  • thing."
  • "I intend to."
  • "Fine!"
  • "The marriage would be unsuitable in every way. Miss Bennett and my son
  • do not vibrate on the same plane."
  • "That's right. I've noticed it myself."
  • "Their auras are not the same colour."
  • "If I've thought that once," said Bream Mortimer, "I've thought it a
  • hundred times. I wish I had a dollar for every time I've thought it. Not
  • the same colour. That's the whole thing in a nutshell."
  • "I am much obliged to you for coming and telling me of this. I shall
  • take immediate steps."
  • "That's good. But what's the procedure? It's getting late. She'll be
  • waiting at the church at eleven."
  • "Eustace will not be there."
  • "You think you can fix it?"
  • "Eustace will not be there," repeated Mrs. Hignett.
  • Bream Mortimer hopped down from his chair.
  • "Well, you've taken a weight off my mind."
  • "A mind, I should imagine, scarcely constructed to bear great weights."
  • "I'll be going. Haven't had breakfast yet. Too worried to eat breakfast.
  • Relieved now. This is where three eggs and a rasher of ham get cut off
  • in their prime. I feel I can rely on you."
  • "You can!"
  • "Then I'll say good-bye."
  • "Good-bye."
  • "I mean really good-bye. I'm sailing for England on Saturday on the
  • 'Atlantic.'"
  • "Indeed? My son will be your fellow-traveller."
  • Bream Mortimer looked somewhat apprehensive.
  • "You won't tell him that I was the one who spilled the beans?"
  • "I beg your pardon?"
  • "You won't wise him up that I threw a spanner into the machinery?"
  • "I do not understand you."
  • "You won't tell him that I crabbed his act ... gave the thing away ...
  • gummed the game?"
  • "I shall not mention your chivalrous intervention."
  • "Chivalrous?" said Bream Mortimer a little doubtfully. "I don't know
  • that I'd call it absolutely chivalrous. Of course, all's fair in love
  • and war. Well, I'm glad you're going to keep my share in the business
  • under your hat. It might have been awkward meeting him on board."
  • "You are not likely to meet Eustace on board. He is a very indifferent
  • sailor and spends most of his time in his cabin."
  • "That's good! Saves a lot of awkwardness. Well, good-bye."
  • "Good-bye. When you reach England, remember me to your father."
  • "He won't have forgotten you," said Bream Mortimer, confidently. He did
  • not see how it was humanly possible for anyone to forget this woman. She
  • was like a celebrated chewing-gum. The taste lingered.
  • Mrs. Hignett was a woman of instant and decisive action. Even while her
  • late visitor was speaking, schemes had begun to form in her mind like
  • bubbles rising to the surface of a rushing river. By the time the door
  • had closed behind Bream Mortimer she had at her disposal no fewer than
  • seven, all good. It took her but a moment to select the best and
  • simplest. She tiptoed softly to her son's room. Rhythmic snores greeted
  • her listening ears. She opened the door and went noiselessly in.
  • CHAPTER II
  • GALLANT RESCUE BY WELL-DRESSED YOUNG MAN
  • § 1
  • The White Star liner "Atlantic" lay at her pier with steam up and
  • gangway down, ready for her trip to Southampton. The hour of departure
  • was near, and there was a good deal of mixed activity going on. Sailors
  • fiddled about with ropes. Junior officers flitted to and fro.
  • White-jacketed stewards wrestled with trunks. Probably the captain,
  • though not visible, was also employed on some useful work of a nautical
  • nature and not wasting his time. Men, women, boxes, rugs, dogs, flowers,
  • and baskets of fruits were flowing on board in a steady stream.
  • The usual drove of citizens had come to see the travellers off. There
  • were men on the passenger-list who were being seen off by fathers, by
  • mothers, by sisters, by cousins, and by aunts. In the steerage, there
  • was an elderly Jewish lady who was being seen off by exactly
  • thirty-seven of her late neighbours in Rivington Street. And two men in
  • the second cabin were being seen off by detectives, surely the crowning
  • compliment a great nation can bestow. The cavernous Customs sheds were
  • congested with friends and relatives, and Sam Marlowe, heading for the
  • gang-plank, was only able to make progress by employing all the muscle
  • and energy which Nature had bestowed upon him, and which during the
  • greater part of his life he had developed by athletic exercise. However,
  • after some minutes of silent endeavour, now driving his shoulder into
  • the midriff of some obstructing male, now courteously lifting some stout
  • female off his feet, he had succeeded in struggling to within a few
  • yards of his goal, when suddenly a sharp pain shot through his right
  • arm, and he spun round with a cry.
  • It seemed to Sam that he had been bitten, and this puzzled him, for New
  • York crowds, though they may shove and jostle, rarely bite.
  • He found himself face to face with an extraordinarily pretty girl.
  • She was a red-haired girl, with the beautiful ivory skin which goes with
  • red hair. Her eyes, though they were under the shadow of her hat, and he
  • could not be certain, he diagnosed as green, or may be blue, or possibly
  • grey. Not that it mattered, for he had a catholic taste in feminine
  • eyes. So long as they were large and bright, as were the specimens under
  • his immediate notice, he was not the man to quibble about a point of
  • colour. Her nose was small, and on the very tip of it there was a tiny
  • freckle. Her mouth was nice and wide, her chin soft and round. She was
  • just about the height which every girl ought to be. Her figure was trim,
  • her feet tiny, and she wore one of those dresses of which a man can say
  • no more than that they look pretty well all right.
  • Nature abhors a vacuum. Samuel Marlowe was a susceptible young man, and
  • for many a long month his heart had been lying empty, all swept and
  • garnished, with "Welcome" on the mat. This girl seemed to rush in and
  • fill it. She was not the prettiest girl he had ever seen. She was the
  • third prettiest. He had an orderly mind, one capable of classifying and
  • docketing girls. But there was a subtle something about her, a sort of
  • how-shall-one-put-it, which he had never encountered before. He
  • swallowed convulsively. His well-developed chest swelled beneath its
  • covering of blue flannel and invisible stripe. At last, he told himself,
  • he was in love, really in love, and at first sight, too, which made it
  • all the more impressive. He doubted whether in the whole course of
  • history anything like this had ever happened before to anybody. Oh, to
  • clasp this girl to him and....
  • But she had bitten him in the arm. That was hardly the right spirit.
  • That, he felt, constituted an obstacle.
  • "Oh, I'm so sorry!" she cried.
  • Well, of course, if she regretted her rash act.... After all, an
  • impulsive girl might bite a man in the arm in the excitement of the
  • moment and still have a sweet, womanly nature....
  • "The crowd seems to make Pinky-Boodles so nervous."
  • Sam might have remained mystified, but at this juncture there proceeded
  • from a bundle of rugs in the neighbourhood of the girl's lower ribs, a
  • sharp yapping sound, of such a calibre as to be plainly audible over the
  • confused noise of Mamies who were telling Sadies to be sure and write,
  • of Bills who were instructing Dicks to look up old Joe in Paris and give
  • him their best, and of all the fruit-boys, candy-boys, magazine-boys,
  • American-flag-boys, and telegraph boys who were honking their wares on
  • every side.
  • "I hope he didn't hurt you much. You're the third person he's bitten
  • to-day." She kissed the animal in a loving and congratulatory way on the
  • tip of his black nose. "Not counting waiters at the hotel, of course,"
  • she added. And then she was swept from him in the crowd, and he was left
  • thinking of all the things he might have said--all those graceful,
  • witty, ingratiating things which just make a bit of difference on these
  • occasions.
  • He had said nothing. Not a sound, exclusive of the first sharp yowl of
  • pain, had proceeded from him. He had just goggled. A rotten exhibition!
  • Perhaps he would never see this girl again. She looked the sort of girl
  • who comes to see friends off and doesn't sail herself. And what memory
  • of him would she retain? She would mix him up with the time when she
  • went to visit the deaf-and-dumb hospital.
  • § 2
  • Sam reached the gang-plank, showed his ticket, and made his way through
  • the crowd of passengers, passengers' friends, stewards, junior officers,
  • and sailors who infested the deck. He proceeded down the main
  • companion-way, through a rich smell of india-rubber and mixed pickles,
  • as far as the dining saloon; then turned down the narrow passage leading
  • to his state-room.
  • State-rooms on ocean liners are curious things. When you see them on the
  • chart in the passenger-office, with the gentlemanly clerk drawing rings
  • round them in pencil, they seem so vast that you get the impression
  • that, after stowing away all your trunks, you will have room left over
  • to do a bit of entertaining--possibly an informal dance or something.
  • When you go on board, you find that the place has shrunk to the
  • dimensions of an undersized cupboard in which it would be impossible to
  • swing a cat. And then, about the second day out, it suddenly expands
  • again. For one reason or another the necessity for swinging cats does
  • not arise, and you find yourself quite comfortable.
  • Sam, balancing himself on the narrow, projecting ledge which the chart
  • in the passenger-office had grandiloquently described as a lounge, began
  • to feel the depression which marks the second phase. He almost wished
  • now that he had not been so energetic in having his room changed in
  • order to enjoy the company of his cousin Eustace. It was going to be a
  • tight fit. Eustace's bag was already in the cabin, and it seemed to take
  • up the entire fairway. Still, after all, Eustace was a good sort, and
  • would be a cheerful companion. And Sam realised that if the girl with
  • the red hair was not a passenger on the boat, he was going to have need
  • of diverting society.
  • A footstep sounded in the passage outside. The door opened.
  • "Hullo, Eustace!" said Sam.
  • Eustace Hignett nodded listlessly, sat down on his bag, and emitted a
  • deep sigh. He was a small, fragile-looking young man with a pale,
  • intellectual face. Dark hair fell in a sweep over his forehead. He
  • looked like a man who would write _vers libre_, as indeed he did.
  • "Hullo!" he said, in a hollow voice.
  • Sam regarded him blankly. He had not seen him for some years, but, going
  • by his recollections of him at the University, he had expected something
  • cheerier than this. In fact, he had rather been relying on Eustace to be
  • the life and soul of the party. The man sitting on the bag before him
  • could hardly have filled that role at a gathering of Russian novelists.
  • "What on earth's the matter?" said Sam.
  • "The matter?" Eustace Hignett laughed mirthlessly. "Oh, nothing. Nothing
  • much. Nothing to signify. Only my heart's broken." He eyed with
  • considerable malignity the bottle of water in the rack above his head, a
  • harmless object provided by the White Star Company for clients who
  • might desire to clean their teeth during the voyage.
  • "If you would care to hear the story...?" he said.
  • "Go ahead."
  • "It is quite short."
  • "That's good."
  • "Soon after I arrived in America, I met a girl...."
  • "Talking of girls," said Sam with enthusiasm, "I've just seen the only
  • one in the world that really amounts to anything. It was like this. I
  • was shoving my way through the mob on the dock, when suddenly...."
  • "Shall I tell you my story, or will you tell yours?"
  • "Oh, sorry! Go ahead."
  • Eustace Hignett scowled at the printed notice on the wall, informing
  • occupants of the state-room that the name of their steward was J. B.
  • Midgeley.
  • "She was an extraordinarily pretty girl...."
  • "So was mine! I give you my honest word I never in all my life saw
  • such...."
  • "Of course, if you prefer that I postponed my narrative?" said Eustace
  • coldly.
  • "Oh, sorry! Carry on."
  • "She was an extraordinarily pretty girl...."
  • "What was her name?"
  • "Wilhelmina Bennett. She was an extraordinarily pretty girl, and highly
  • intelligent. I read her all my poems, and she appreciated them
  • immensely. She enjoyed my singing. My conversation appeared to interest
  • her. She admired my...."
  • "I see. You made a hit. Now get on with the story."
  • "Don't bustle me," said Eustace querulously.
  • "Well, you know, the voyage only takes eight days."
  • "I've forgotten where I was."
  • "You were saying what a devil of a chap she thought you. What happened?
  • I suppose, when you actually came to propose, you found she was engaged
  • to some other johnny?"
  • "Not at all! I asked her to be my wife and she consented. We both agreed
  • that a quiet wedding was what we wanted--she thought her father might
  • stop the thing if he knew, and I was dashed sure my mother would--so we
  • decided to get married without telling anybody. By now," said Eustace,
  • with a morose glance at the porthole, "I ought to have been on my
  • honeymoon. Everything was settled. I had the licence and the parson's
  • fee. I had been breaking in a new tie for the wedding."
  • "And then you quarrelled?"
  • "Nothing of the kind. I wish you would stop trying to tell me the story.
  • I'm telling _you_. What happened was this: somehow--I can't make out
  • how--mother found out. And then, of course, it was all over. She stopped
  • the thing."
  • Sam was indignant. He thoroughly disliked his Aunt Adeline, and his
  • cousin's meek subservience to her revolted him.
  • "Stopped it? I suppose she said 'Now, Eustace, you mustn't!' and you
  • said 'Very well, mother!' and scratched the fixture?"
  • "She didn't say a word. She never has said a word. As far as that goes,
  • she might never have heard anything about the marriage."
  • "Then how do you mean she stopped it?"
  • "She pinched my trousers!"
  • "Pinched your trousers!"
  • Eustace groaned. "All of them! The whole bally lot! She gets up long
  • before I do, and she must have come into my room and cleaned it out
  • while I was asleep. When I woke up and started to dress, I couldn't find
  • a single damned pair of bags in the whole place. I looked everywhere.
  • Finally, I went into the sitting-room where she was writing letters and
  • asked if she had happened to see any anywhere. She said she had sent
  • them all to be pressed. She said she knew I never went out in the
  • mornings--I don't as a rule--and they would be back at lunch-time. A fat
  • lot of use that was! I had to be at the church at eleven. Well, I told
  • her I had a most important engagement with a man at eleven, and she
  • wanted to know what it was, and I tried to think of something, but it
  • sounded pretty feeble, and she said I had better telephone to the man
  • and put it off. I did it, too. Rang up the first number in the book and
  • told some fellow I had never seen in my life that I couldn't meet him
  • because I hadn't any trousers! He was pretty peeved, judging from what
  • he said about my being on the wrong number. And mother, listening all
  • the time, and I knowing that she knew--something told me that she
  • knew--and she knowing that I knew she knew.... I tell you, it was
  • awful!"
  • "And the girl?"
  • "She broke off the engagement. Apparently she waited at the church from
  • eleven till one-thirty, and then began to get impatient. She wouldn't
  • see me when I called in the afternoon, but I got a letter from her
  • saying that what had happened was all for the best, as she had been
  • thinking it over and had come to the conclusion that she had made a
  • mistake. She said something about my not being as dynamic as she had
  • thought I was. She said that what she wanted was something more like
  • Lancelot or Sir Galahad, and would I look on the episode as closed."
  • "Did you explain about the trousers?"
  • "Yes. It seemed to make things worse. She said that she could forgive a
  • man anything except being ridiculous."
  • "I think you're well out of it," said Sam, judicially. "She can't have
  • been much of a girl."
  • "I feel that now. But it doesn't alter the fact that my life is ruined.
  • I have become a woman-hater. It's an infernal nuisance, because
  • practically all the poetry I have ever written rather went out of its
  • way to boost women, and now I'll have to start all over again and
  • approach the subject from another angle. Women! When I think how mother
  • behaved and how Wilhelmina treated me, I wonder there isn't a law
  • against them. 'What mighty ills have not been done by Woman! Who was't
  • betrayed the Capitol....'"
  • "In Washington?" said Sam, puzzled. He had heard nothing of this. But
  • then he generally confined his reading of the papers to the sporting
  • page.
  • "In Rome, you ass! Ancient Rome."
  • "Oh, as long ago as that?"
  • "I was quoting from Thomas Otway's 'Orphan.' I wish I could write like
  • Otway. He knew what he was talking about. 'Who was't betrayed the
  • Capitol? A woman. Who lost Marc Anthony the world? A woman. Who was the
  • cause of a long ten years' war and laid at last old Troy in ashes?
  • Woman! Destructive, damnable, deceitful woman!'"
  • "Well, of course, he may be right in a way. As regards some women, I
  • mean. But the girl I met on the dock...."
  • "Don't!" said Eustace Hignett. "If you have anything bitter and
  • derogatory to say about women, say it and I will listen eagerly. But if
  • you merely wish to gibber about the ornamental exterior of some dashed
  • girl you have been fool enough to get attracted by, go and tell it to
  • the captain or the ship's cat or J. B. Midgeley. Do try to realise that
  • I am a soul in torment. I am a ruin, a spent force, a man without a
  • future. What does life hold for me? Love? I shall never love again. My
  • work? I haven't any. I think I shall take to drink."
  • "Talking of that," said Sam, "I suppose they open the bar directly we
  • pass the three-mile limit. How about a small one?"
  • Eustace shook his head gloomily.
  • "Do you suppose I pass my time on board ship in gadding about and
  • feasting? Directly the vessel begins to move, I go to bed and stay
  • there. As a matter of fact, I think it would be wisest to go to bed now.
  • Don't let me keep you if you want to go on deck."
  • "It looks to me," said Sam, "as if I had been mistaken in thinking that
  • you were going to be a ray of sunshine on the voyage."
  • "Ray of sunshine!" said Eustace Hignett, pulling a pair of mauve pyjamas
  • out of the kit-bag. "I'm going to be a volcano!"
  • Sam left the state-room and headed for the companion. He wanted to get
  • on deck and ascertain if that girl was still on board. About now, the
  • sheep would be separating from the goats; the passengers would be on
  • deck and their friends returning to the shore. A slight tremor in the
  • boards on which he trod told him that this separation must have already
  • taken place. The ship was moving. He ran lightly up the companion. Was
  • she on board or was she not? The next few minutes would decide. He
  • reached the top of the stairs, and passed out on to the crowded deck.
  • And, as he did so, a scream, followed by confused shouting, came from
  • the rail nearest the shore. He perceived that the rail was black with
  • people hanging over it. They were all looking into the water.
  • Samuel Marlowe was not one of those who pass aloofly by when there is
  • excitement toward. If a horse fell down in the street, he was always
  • among those present: and he was never too busy to stop and stare at a
  • blank window on which were inscribed the words, "Watch this space!" In
  • short, he was one of Nature's rubbernecks, and to dash to the rail and
  • shove a fat man in a tweed cap to one side was with him the work of a
  • moment. He had thus an excellent view of what was going on--a view which
  • he improved the next instant by climbing up and kneeling on the rail.
  • There was a man in the water, a man whose upper section, the only one
  • visible, was clad in a blue jersey. He wore a bowler hat, and from time
  • to time, as he battled with the waves, he would put up a hand and adjust
  • this more firmly on his head. A dressy swimmer.
  • Scarcely had he taken in this spectacle when Marlowe became aware of the
  • girl he had met on the dock. She was standing a few feet away, leaning
  • out over the rail with wide eyes and parted lips. Like everybody else,
  • she was staring into the water.
  • As Sam looked at her, the thought crossed his mind that here was a
  • wonderful chance of making the most tremendous impression on this girl.
  • What would she not think of a man who, reckless of his own safety, dived
  • in and went boldly to the rescue? And there were men, no doubt, who
  • would be chumps enough to do it, he thought, as he prepared to shift
  • back to a position of greater safety.
  • At this moment, the fat man in the tweed cap, incensed at having been
  • jostled out of the front row, made his charge. He had but been
  • crouching, the better to spring. Now he sprang. His full weight took
  • Sam squarely in the spine. There was an instant in which that young man
  • hung, as it were, between sea and sky: then he shot down over the rail
  • to join the man in the blue jersey, who had just discovered that his hat
  • was not on straight and had paused to adjust it once more with a few
  • skilful touches of the finger.
  • § 3
  • In the brief interval of time which Marlowe had spent in the state-room
  • chatting with Eustace about the latter's bruised soul, some rather
  • curious things had been happening above. Not extraordinary, perhaps, but
  • curious. These must now be related. A story, if it is to grip the
  • reader, should, I am aware, go always forward. It should march. It
  • should leap from crag to crag like the chamois of the Alps. If there is
  • one thing I hate, it is a novel which gets you interested in the hero in
  • chapter one and then cuts back in chapter two to tell you all about his
  • grandfather. Nevertheless, at this point we must go back a space. We
  • must return to the moment when, having deposited her Pekinese dog in her
  • state-room, the girl with the red hair came out again on deck. This
  • happened just about the time when Eustace Hignett was beginning his
  • narrative.
  • The girl went to the rail and gazed earnestly at the shore. There was a
  • rattle, as the gang-plank moved in-board and was deposited on the deck.
  • The girl uttered a little cry of dismay. Then suddenly her face
  • brightened, and she began to wave her arm to attract the attention of an
  • elderly man with a red face made redder by exertion, who had just forced
  • his way to the edge of the dock and was peering up at the
  • passenger-lined rail.
  • The boat had now begun to move slowly out of its slip, backing into the
  • river. It was now that the man on the dock sighted the girl. She
  • gesticulated at him. He gesticulated at her. He produced a handkerchief,
  • swiftly tied up a bundle of currency bills in it, backed to give himself
  • room, and then, with all the strength of his arm, hurled the bills in
  • the direction of the deck. The handkerchief with its precious contents
  • shot in a graceful arc towards the deck, fell short by a good six feet,
  • and dropped into the water, where it unfolded like a lily, sending
  • twenty-dollar bills, ten-dollar bills, five-dollar bills, and an
  • assortment of ones floating out over the wavelets.
  • It was at this moment that Mr. Oscar Swenson, one of the thriftiest
  • souls who ever came out of Sweden, perceived that the chance of a
  • lifetime had arrived for adding substantially to his little savings. By
  • profession he was one of those men who eke out a precarious livelihood
  • by rowing dreamily about the water-front in skiffs. He was doing so now:
  • and, as he sat meditatively in his skiff, having done his best to give
  • the liner a good send off by paddling round her in circles, the pleading
  • face of a twenty-dollar bill peered up at him. Mr. Swenson was not the
  • man to resist the appeal. He uttered a sharp bark of ecstasy, pressed
  • his bowler hat firmly upon his brow, and dived in. A moment later he
  • had risen to the surface, and was gathering up money with both hands.
  • He was still busy with this congenial task when a tremendous splash at
  • his side sent him under again: and, rising for a second time, he
  • observed with not a little chagrin that he had been joined by a young
  • man in a blue flannel suit with an invisible stripe.
  • "Svensk!" exclaimed Mr. Swenson, or whatever it is that natives of
  • Sweden exclaim in moments of justifiable annoyance. He resented the
  • advent of this newcomer. He had been getting along fine and had had the
  • situation well in hand. To him Sam Marlowe represented Competition, and
  • Mr. Swenson desired no competitors in his treasure-seeking enterprise.
  • He travels, thought Mr. Swenson, the fastest who travels alone.
  • Sam Marlowe had a touch of the philosopher in him. He had the ability to
  • adapt himself to circumstances. It had been no part of his plans to come
  • whizzing down off the rail into this singularly soup-like water which
  • tasted in equal parts of oil and dead rats; but, now that he was here he
  • was prepared to make the best of the situation. Swimming, it happened,
  • was one of the things he did best, and somewhere among his belongings at
  • home was a tarnished pewter cup which he had won at school in the
  • "Saving Life" competition. He knew exactly what to do. You get behind
  • the victim and grab him firmly under his arms, and then you start
  • swimming on your back. A moment later, the astonished Mr. Swenson who,
  • being practically amphibious, had not anticipated that anyone would
  • have the cool impertinence to try to save him from drowning, found
  • himself seized from behind and towed vigorously away from a ten-dollar
  • bill which he had almost succeeded in grasping. The spiritual agony
  • caused by this assault rendered him mercifully dumb; though, even had he
  • contrived to utter the rich Swedish oaths which occurred to him, his
  • remarks could scarcely have been heard, for the crowd on the dock was
  • cheering as one man. They had often paid good money to see far less
  • gripping sights in the movies. They roared applause. The liner,
  • meanwhile, continued to move stodgily out into mid-river.
  • The only drawback to these life-saving competitions at school,
  • considered from the standpoint of fitting the competitors for the
  • problems of afterlife, is that the object saved on such occasions is a
  • leather dummy, and of all things in this world a leather dummy is
  • perhaps the most placid and phlegmatic. It differs in many respects from
  • an emotional Swedish gentleman, six foot high and constructed throughout
  • of steel and india-rubber, who is being lugged away from cash which he
  • has been regarding in the light of a legacy. Indeed, it would be hard to
  • find a respect in which it does not differ. So far from lying inert in
  • Sam's arms and allowing himself to be saved in a quiet and orderly
  • manner, Mr. Swenson betrayed all the symptoms of one who feels that he
  • has fallen among murderers. Mr. Swenson, much as he disliked
  • competition, was ready to put up with it, provided that it was fair
  • competition. This pulling your rival away from the loot so that you
  • could grab it yourself--thus shockingly had the man misinterpreted Sam's
  • motives--was another thing altogether, and his stout soul would have
  • none of it. He began immediately to struggle with all the violence at
  • his disposal. His large, hairy hands came out of the water and swung
  • hopefully in the direction where he assumed his assailant's face to be.
  • Sam was not unprepared for this display. His researches in the art of
  • life-saving had taught him that your drowning man frequently struggles
  • against his best interests. In which case, cruel to be kind, one simply
  • stunned the blighter. He decided to stun Mr. Swenson, though, if he had
  • known that gentleman more intimately and had been aware that he had the
  • reputation of possessing the thickest head on the water-front, he would
  • have realised the magnitude of the task. Friends of Mr. Swenson, in
  • convivial moments, had frequently endeavoured to stun him with bottles,
  • boots and bits of lead piping and had gone away depressed by failure.
  • Sam, ignorant of this, attempted to do the job with clenched fist, which
  • he brought down as smartly as possible on the crown of the other's
  • bowler hat.
  • It was the worst thing he could have done. Mr. Swenson thought highly of
  • his hat and this brutal attack upon it confirmed his gloomiest
  • apprehensions. Now thoroughly convinced that the only thing to do was to
  • sell his life dearly, he wrenched himself round, seized his assailant by
  • the neck, twined his arms about his middle, and accompanied him below
  • the surface.
  • By the time he had swallowed his first pint and was beginning his
  • second, Sam was reluctantly compelled to come to the conclusion that
  • this was the end. The thought irritated him unspeakably. This, he felt,
  • was just the silly, contrary way things always happened. Why should it
  • be he who was perishing like this? Why not Eustace Hignett? Now there
  • was a fellow whom this sort of thing would just have suited.
  • Broken-hearted Eustace Hignett would have looked on all this as a
  • merciful release.
  • He paused in his reflections to try to disentangle the more prominent of
  • Mr. Swenson's limbs from about him. By this time he was sure that he had
  • never met anyone he disliked so intensely as Mr. Swenson--not even his
  • Aunt Adeline. The man was a human octopus. Sam could count seven
  • distinct legs twined round him and at least as many arms. It seemed to
  • him that he was being done to death in his prime by a solid platoon of
  • Swedes. He put his whole soul into one last effort ... something seemed
  • to give ... he was free. Pausing only to try to kick Mr. Swenson in the
  • face, Sam shot to the surface. Something hard and sharp prodded him in
  • the head. Then something caught the collar of his coat; and, finally,
  • spouting like a whale, he found himself dragged upwards and over the
  • side of a boat.
  • The time which Sam had spent with Mr. Swenson below the surface had been
  • brief, but it had been long enough to enable the whole floating
  • population of the North River to converge on the scene in scows, skiffs,
  • launches, tugs, and other vessels. The fact that the water in that
  • vicinity was crested with currency had not escaped the notice of these
  • navigators, and they had gone to it as one man. First in the race came
  • the tug "Reuben S. Watson," the skipper of which, following a famous
  • precedent, had taken his little daughter to bear him company. It was to
  • this fact that Marlowe really owed his rescue. Women often have a vein
  • of sentiment in them where men can only see the hard business side of a
  • situation; and it was the skipper's daughter who insisted that the
  • family boat-hook, then in use as a harpoon for spearing dollar bills,
  • should be devoted to the less profitable but humaner end of extricating
  • the young man from a watery grave.
  • The skipper had grumbled a bit at first but had given way--he always
  • spoiled the girl--with the result that Sam found himself sitting on the
  • deck of the tug, engaged in the complicated process of restoring his
  • faculties to the normal. In a sort of dream he perceived Mr. Swenson
  • rise to the surface some feet away, adjust his bowler hat, and, after
  • one long look of dislike in his direction, swim off rapidly to intercept
  • a five which was floating under the stern of a near-by skiff.
  • Sam sat on the deck and panted. He played on the boards like a public
  • fountain. At the back of his mind there was a flickering thought that he
  • wanted to do something, a vague feeling that he had some sort of an
  • appointment which he must keep; but he was unable to think what it was.
  • Meanwhile, he conducted tentative experiments with his breath. It was
  • so long since he had last breathed that he had lost the knack of it.
  • "Well, aincher wet?" said a voice.
  • The skipper's daughter was standing beside him, looking down
  • commiseratingly. Of the rest of the family all he could see was the
  • broad blue seats of their trousers as they leaned hopefully over the
  • side in the quest for wealth.
  • "Yes, sir! You sure are wet! Gee! I never seen anyone so wet! I seen wet
  • guys but I never seen anyone so wet as you. Yessir, you're certainly
  • _wet_!"
  • "I _am_ wet," admitted Sam.
  • "Yessir, you're wet! Wet's the word all right. Good and wet, that's what
  • you are!"
  • "It's the water," said Sam. His brain was still clouded; he wished he
  • could remember what that appointment was. "That's what has made me wet."
  • "It's sure made you wet all right," agreed the girl. She looked at him
  • interestedly. "Wotcha do it for?" she asked.
  • "Do it for?"
  • "Yes, wotcha do it for? Wotcha do a Brodie for off'n that ship? I didn't
  • see it myself, but pa says you come walloping down off'n the deck like a
  • sack of potatoes."
  • Sam uttered a sharp cry. He had remembered.
  • "Where is she?"
  • "Where's who?"
  • "The liner."
  • "She's off down the river, I guess. She was swinging round, the last I
  • seen of her."
  • "She's not gone!"
  • "Sure she's gone. Wotcha expect her to do? She's gotta get over to the
  • other side, ain't she? Cert'nly she's gone." She looked at him
  • interested. "Do you want to be on board her?"
  • "Of course I do."
  • "Then, for the love of Pete, wotcha doin' walloping off'n her like a
  • sack of potatoes?"
  • "I slipped. I was pushed or something." Sam sprang to his feet and
  • looked wildly about him. "I must get back. Isn't there any way of
  • getting back?"
  • "Well, you could ketch up with her at quarantine out in the bay. She'll
  • stop to let the pilot off."
  • "Can you take me to quarantine?"
  • The girl glanced doubtfully at the seat of the nearest pair of trousers.
  • "Well, we _could_," she said. "But pa's kind of set in his ways, and
  • right now he's fishing for dollar bills with the boat hook. He's apt to
  • get sorta mad if he's interrupted."
  • "I'll give him fifty dollars if he'll put me on board."
  • "Got it on you?" inquired the nymph coyly. She had her share of
  • sentiment, but she was her father's daughter and inherited from him the
  • business sense.
  • "Here it is." He pulled out his pocket book. The book was dripping, but
  • the contents were only fairly moist.
  • "Pa!" said the girl.
  • The trouser-seat remained where it was, deaf to its child's cry.
  • "Pa! Cummere! Wantcha!"
  • The trousers did not even quiver. But this girl was a girl of decision.
  • There was some nautical implement resting in a rack convenient to her
  • hand. It was long, solid, and constructed of one of the harder forms of
  • wood. Deftly extracting this from its place, she smote her inattentive
  • parent on the only visible portion of him. He turned sharply, exhibiting
  • a red, bearded face.
  • "Pa, this gen'man wants to be took aboard the boat at quarantine. He'll
  • give you fifty berries."
  • The wrath died out of the skipper's face like the slow turning down of a
  • lamp. The fishing had been poor, and so far he had only managed to
  • secure a single two-dollar bill. In a crisis like the one which had so
  • suddenly arisen you cannot do yourself justice with a boat-hook.
  • "Fifty berries!"
  • "Fifty seeds!" the girl assured him. "Are you on?"
  • "Queen," said the skipper simply, "you said a mouthful!"
  • Twenty minutes later Sam was climbing up the side of the liner as it lay
  • towering over the tug like a mountain. His clothes hung about him
  • clammily. He squelched as he walked.
  • A kindly-looking old gentleman who was smoking a cigar by the rail
  • regarded him with open eyes.
  • "My dear sir, you're very wet," he said.
  • Sam passed him with a cold face and hurried through the door leading to
  • the companion way.
  • "Mummie, why is that man wet?" cried the clear voice of a little child.
  • Sam whizzed by, leaping down the stairs.
  • "Good Lord, sir! You're very wet!" said a steward in the doorway of the
  • dining saloon.
  • "You _are_ wet," said a stewardess in the passage.
  • Sam raced for his state-room. He bolted in and sank on the lounge. In
  • the lower berth Eustace Hignett was lying with closed eyes. He opened
  • them languidly, then stared.
  • "Hullo!" he said. "I say! You're wet!"
  • § 4
  • Sam removed his clinging garments and hurried into a new suit. He was in
  • no mood for conversation and Eustace Hignett's frank curiosity jarred
  • upon him. Happily, at this point, a sudden shivering of the floor and a
  • creaking of woodwork proclaimed the fact that the vessel was under way
  • again, and his cousin, turning pea-green, rolled over on his side with a
  • hollow moan. Sam finished buttoning his waistcoat and went out.
  • He was passing the inquiry bureau on the C-deck, striding along with
  • bent head and scowling brow, when a sudden exclamation caused him to
  • look up, and the scowl was wiped from his brow as with a sponge. For
  • there stood the girl he had met on the dock. With her was a superfluous
  • young man who looked like a parrot.
  • "Oh, _how_ are you?" asked the girl breathlessly.
  • "Splendid, thanks," said Sam.
  • "Didn't you get very wet?"
  • "I did get a little damp."
  • "I thought you would," said the young man who looked like a parrot.
  • "Directly I saw you go over the side I said to myself: 'That fellow's
  • going to get wet!'"
  • There was a pause.
  • "Oh!" said the girl. "May I--Mr.----?"
  • "Marlowe."
  • "Mr. Marlowe. Mr. Bream Mortimer."
  • Sam smirked at the young man. The young man smirked at Sam.
  • "Nearly got left behind," said Bream Mortimer.
  • "Yes, nearly."
  • "No joke getting left behind."
  • "No."
  • "Have to take the next boat. Lose a lot of time," said Mr. Mortimer,
  • driving home his point.
  • The girl had listened to these intellectual exchanges with impatience.
  • She now spoke again.
  • "Oh, Bream!"
  • "Hello?"
  • "Do be a dear and run down to the saloon and see if it's all right about
  • our places for lunch."
  • "It is all right. The table steward said so."
  • "Yes, but go and make certain."
  • "All right."
  • He hopped away and the girl turned to Sam with shining eyes.
  • "Oh, Mr. Marlowe, you oughtn't to have done it! Really, you oughtn't!
  • You might have been drowned! But I never saw anything so wonderful. It
  • was like the stories of knights who used to jump into lions' dens after
  • gloves!"
  • "Yes?" said Sam a little vaguely. The resemblance had not struck him. It
  • seemed a silly hobby, and rough on the lions, too.
  • "It was the sort of thing Sir Lancelot or Sir Galahad would have done!
  • But you shouldn't have bothered, really! It's all right, now."
  • "Oh, it's all right now?"
  • "Yes. I'd quite forgotten that Mr. Mortimer was to be on board. He has
  • given me all the money I shall need. You see it was this way. I had to
  • sail on this boat in rather a hurry. Father's head clerk was to have
  • gone to the bank and got some money and met me on board and given it to
  • me, but the silly old man was late and when he got to the dock they had
  • just pulled in the gang-plank. So he tried to throw the money to me in
  • a handkerchief and it fell into the water. But you shouldn't have dived
  • in after it."
  • "Oh, well!" said Sam, straightening his tie, with a quiet, brave smile.
  • He had never expected to feel grateful to that obese bounder who had
  • shoved him off the rail, but now he would have liked to seek him out and
  • shake him by the hand.
  • "You really are the bravest man I ever met!"
  • "Oh, no!"
  • "How modest you are! But I suppose all brave men are modest!"
  • "I was only too delighted at what looked like a chance of doing you a
  • service."
  • "It was the extraordinary quickness of it that was so wonderful. I do
  • admire presence of mind. You didn't hesitate for a second. You just shot
  • over the side as though propelled by some irresistible force!"
  • "It was nothing, nothing really. One just happens to have the knack of
  • keeping one's head and acting quickly on the spur of the moment. Some
  • people have it, some haven't."
  • "And just think! As Bream was saying...."
  • "It _is_ all right," said Mr. Mortimer, reappearing suddenly. "I saw a
  • couple of the stewards and they both said it was all right. So it's all
  • right."
  • "Splendid," said the girl. "Oh, Bream!"
  • "Hello?"
  • "Do be an angel and run along to my state-room and see if Pinky-Boodles
  • is quite comfortable."
  • "Bound to be."
  • "Yes. But do go. He may be feeling lonely. Chirrup to him a little."
  • "Chirrup?"
  • "Yes, to cheer him up."
  • "Oh, all right."
  • "Run along!"
  • Mr. Mortimer ran along. He had the air of one who feels that he only
  • needs a peaked cap and a uniform two sizes too small for him to be a
  • properly equipped messenger boy.
  • "And, as Bream was saying," resumed the girl, "you might have been left
  • behind."
  • "That," said Sam, edging a step closer, "was the thought that tortured
  • me, the thought that a friendship so delightfully begun...."
  • "But it hadn't begun. We have never spoken to each other before now."
  • "Have you forgotten? On the dock...."
  • Sudden enlightenment came into her eyes.
  • "Oh, you are the man poor Pinky-Boodles bit!"
  • "The lucky man!"
  • Her face clouded.
  • "Poor Pinky is feeling the motion of the boat a little. It's his first
  • voyage."
  • "I shall always remember that it was Pinky who first brought us
  • together. Would you care for a stroll on deck?"
  • "Not just now, thanks. I must be getting back to my room to finish
  • unpacking. After lunch, perhaps."
  • "I will be there. By the way, you know my name, but...."
  • "Oh, mine?" She smiled brightly. "It's funny that a person's name is the
  • last thing one thinks of asking. Mine is Bennett."
  • "Bennett!"
  • "Wilhelmina Bennett. My friends," she said softly as she turned away,
  • "call me Billie!"
  • CHAPTER III
  • SAM PAVES THE WAY
  • For some moments Sam remained where he was, staring after the girl as
  • she flitted down the passage. He felt dizzy. Mental acrobatics always
  • have an unsettling effect, and a young man may be excused for feeling a
  • little dizzy when he is called upon suddenly and without any warning to
  • re-adjust all his preconceived views on any subject. Listening to
  • Eustace Hignett's story of his blighted romance, Sam had formed an
  • unflattering opinion of this Wilhelmina Bennett who had broken off her
  • engagement simply because on the day of the marriage his cousin had been
  • short of the necessary wedding garment. He had, indeed, thought a little
  • smugly how different his goddess of the red hair was from the object of
  • Eustace Hignett's affections. And now they had proved to be one and the
  • same. It was disturbing. It was like suddenly finding the vampire of a
  • five-reel feature film turn into the heroine.
  • Some men, on making the discovery of this girl's identity, might have
  • felt that Providence had intervened to save them from a disastrous
  • entanglement. This point of view never occurred to Samuel Marlowe. The
  • way he looked at it was that he had been all wrong about Wilhelmina
  • Bennett. Eustace, he felt, had been to blame throughout. If this girl
  • had maltreated Eustace's finer feelings, then her reason for doing so
  • must have been excellent and praiseworthy.
  • After all ... poor old Eustace ... quite a good fellow, no doubt in many
  • ways ... but, coming down to brass tacks, what was there about Eustace
  • that gave him any claim to monopolise the affections of a wonderful
  • girl? Where, in a word, did Eustace Hignett get off? He made a
  • tremendous grievance of the fact that she had broken off the engagement,
  • but what right had he to go about the place expecting her to be engaged
  • to him? Eustace Hignett, no doubt, looked upon the poor girl as utterly
  • heartless. Marlowe regarded her behaviour as thoroughly sensible. She
  • had made a mistake, and, realising this at the eleventh hour, she had
  • had the force of character to correct it. He was sorry for poor old
  • Eustace, but he really could not permit the suggestion that Wilhelmina
  • Bennett--her friends called her Billie--had not behaved in a perfectly
  • splendid way throughout. It was women like Wilhelmina Bennett--Billie to
  • her intimates--who made the world worth living in.
  • Her friends called her Billie. He did not blame them. It was a
  • delightful name and suited her to perfection. He practised it a few
  • times. "Billie ... Billie ... Billie...." It certainly ran pleasantly
  • off the tongue. "Billie Bennett." Very musical. "Billie Marlowe." Still
  • better. "We noticed among those present the charming and popular Mrs.
  • 'Billie' Marlowe...."
  • A consuming desire came over him to talk about the girl to someone.
  • Obviously indicated as the party of the second part was Eustace Hignett.
  • If Eustace was still capable of speech--and after all the boat was
  • hardly rolling at all--he would enjoy a further chat about his ruined
  • life. Besides, he had another reason for seeking Eustace's society. As a
  • man who had been actually engaged to marry this supreme girl, Eustace
  • Hignett had an attraction for Sam akin to that of some great public
  • monument. He had become a sort of shrine. He had taken on a glamour. Sam
  • entered the state-room almost reverentially, with something of the
  • emotions of a boy going into his first dime museum.
  • The exhibit was lying on his back, staring at the roof of the berth. By
  • lying absolutely still and forcing himself to think of purely inland
  • scenes and objects, he had contrived to reduce the green in his
  • complexion to a mere tinge. But it would be paltering with the truth to
  • say that he felt debonair. He received Sam with a wan austerity.
  • "Sit down!" he said. "Don't stand there swaying like that. I can't bear
  • it."
  • "Why, we aren't out of the harbour yet. Surely you aren't going to be
  • sea-sick already."
  • "I can issue no positive guarantee. Perhaps if I can keep my mind off
  • it.... I have had good results for the last ten minutes by thinking
  • steadily of the Sahara. There," said Eustace Hignett with enthusiasm,
  • "is a place for you! That is something like a spot. Miles and miles of
  • sand and not a drop of water anywhere!"
  • Sam sat down on the lounge.
  • "You're quite right. The great thing is to concentrate your mind on
  • other topics. Why not, for instance, tell me some more about your
  • unfortunate affair with that girl--Billie Bennett I think you said her
  • name was."
  • "Wilhelmina Bennett. Where on earth did you get the idea that her name
  • was Billie?"
  • "I had a notion that girls called Wilhelmina were sometimes Billie to
  • their friends."
  • "I never called her anything but Wilhelmina. But I really cannot talk
  • about it. The recollection tortures me."
  • "That's just what you want. It's the counter-irritation principle.
  • Persevere, and you'll soon forget that you're on board ship at all."
  • "There's something in that," admitted Eustace reflectively. "It's very
  • good of you to be so sympathetic and interested."
  • "My dear fellow ... anything that I can do ... where did you meet her
  • first, for instance?"
  • "At a dinner...." Eustace Hignett broke off abruptly. He had a good
  • memory and he had just recollected the fish they had served at that
  • dinner--a flabby and exhausted looking fish half sunk beneath the
  • surface of a thick white sauce.
  • "And what struck you most forcibly about her at first? Her lovely hair,
  • I suppose?"
  • "How did you know she had lovely hair?"
  • "My dear chap, I naturally assumed that any girl with whom you fell in
  • love would have nice hair."
  • "Well, you are perfectly right, as it happens. Her hair was remarkably
  • beautiful. It was red...."
  • "Like autumn leaves with the sun on them!" said Marlowe ecstatically.
  • Hignett started.
  • "What an extraordinary thing! That is an absolutely exact description.
  • Her eyes were a deep blue...."
  • "Or, rather, green."
  • "Blue."
  • "Green. There is a shade of green that looks blue."
  • "What the devil do you know about the colour of her eyes?" demanded
  • Eustace heatedly. "Am I telling you about her, or are you telling me?"
  • "My dear old man, don't get excited. Don't you see I am trying to
  • construct this girl in my imagination, to visualise her? I don't pretend
  • to doubt your special knowledge, but after all green eyes generally do
  • go with red hair and there are all shades of green. There is the bright
  • green of meadow grass, the dull green of the uncut emerald, the faint
  • yellowish green of your face at the present moment...."
  • "Don't talk about the colour of my face! Now you've gone and reminded me
  • just when I was beginning to forget."
  • "Awfully sorry. Stupid of me. Get your mind off it again--quick. What
  • were we saying? Oh, yes, this girl. I always think it helps one to form
  • a mental picture of people if one knows something about their
  • tastes--what sort of things they are interested in, their favourite
  • topics of conversation, and so on. This Miss Bennett now, what did she
  • like talking about?"
  • "Oh, all sorts of things."
  • "Yes, but what?"
  • "Well, for one thing she was very fond of poetry. It was that which
  • first drew us together."
  • "Poetry!" Sam's heart sank a little. He had read a certain amount of
  • poetry at school, and once he had won a prize of three shillings and
  • sixpence for the last line of a Limerick in a competition in a weekly
  • paper; but he was self-critic enough to know that poetry was not his
  • long suit. Still there was a library on board the ship, and no doubt it
  • would be possible to borrow the works of some standard bard and bone
  • them up from time to time. "Any special poet?"
  • "Well, she seemed to like my stuff. You never read my sonnet-sequence on
  • Spring, did you?"
  • "No. What other poets did she like besides you?"
  • "Tennyson principally," said Eustace Hignett with a reminiscent quiver
  • in his voice. "The hours we have spent together reading the Idylls of
  • the King!"
  • "The which of what?" inquired Sam, taking a pencil from his pocket and
  • shooting out a cuff.
  • "'The Idylls of the King.' My good man, I know you have a soul which
  • would be considered inadequate by a common earthworm but you have
  • surely heard of Tennyson's 'Idylls of the King?'"
  • "Oh, _those_! Why, my dear old chap! Tennyson's 'Idylls of the King?'
  • Well, I should say! Have I heard of Tennyson's 'Idylls of the King?'
  • Well, really? I suppose you haven't a copy with you on board by any
  • chance?"
  • "There is a copy in my kit bag. The very one we used to read together.
  • Take it and keep it or throw it overboard. I don't want to see it
  • again."
  • Sam prospected among the shirts, collars, and trousers in the bag and
  • presently came upon a morocco-bound volume. He laid it beside him on the
  • lounge.
  • "Little by little, bit by bit," he said, "I am beginning to form a sort
  • of picture of this girl, this--what was her name again? Bennett--this
  • Miss Bennett. You have a wonderful knack of description. You make her
  • seem so real and vivid. Tell me some more about her. She wasn't keen on
  • golf, by any chance, I suppose?"
  • "I believe she did play. The subject came up once and she seemed rather
  • enthusiastic. Why?"
  • "Well, I'd much sooner talk to a girl about golf than poetry."
  • "You are hardly likely to be in a position to have to talk to Wilhelmina
  • Bennett about either, I should imagine."
  • "No, there's that, of course. I was thinking of girls in general. Some
  • girls bar golf, and then it's rather difficult to know how to start the
  • conversation. But, tell me, were there any topics which got on this
  • Miss Bennett's nerves, if you know what I mean? It seems to me that at
  • one time or another you may have said something that offended her. I
  • mean, it seems curious that she should have broken off the engagement if
  • you had never disagreed or quarrelled about anything."
  • "Well, of course, there was always the matter of that dog of hers. She
  • had a dog, you know, a snappy brute of a Pekinese. If there was ever any
  • shadow of disagreement between us, it had to do with that dog. I made
  • rather a point of it that I would not have it about the home after we
  • were married."
  • "I see!" said Sam. He shot his cuff once more and wrote on it:
  • "Dog--conciliate." "Yes, of course, that must have wounded her."
  • "Not half so much as he wounded me. He pinned me by the ankle the day
  • before we--Wilhelmina and I, I mean--were to have been married. It is
  • some satisfaction to me in my broken state to remember that I got home
  • on the little beast with considerable juiciness and lifted him clean
  • over the Chesterfield."
  • Sam shook his head reprovingly.
  • "You shouldn't have done that," he said. He extended his cuff and added
  • the words "Vitally Important" to what he had just written. "It was
  • probably that which decided her."
  • "Well, I hate dogs," said Eustace Hignett querulously. "I remember
  • Wilhelmina once getting quite annoyed with me because I refused to step
  • in and separate a couple of the brutes, absolute strangers to me, who
  • were fighting in the street. I reminded her that we were all fighters
  • nowadays, that life itself was in a sense a fight; but she wouldn't be
  • reasonable about it. She said that Sir Galahad would have done it like a
  • shot. I thought not. We have no evidence whatsoever that Sir Galahad was
  • ever called upon to do anything half as dangerous. And, anyway, he wore
  • armour. Give me a suit of mail, reaching well down over the ankles, and
  • I will willingly intervene in a hundred dog fights. But in thin flannel
  • trousers, no!"
  • Sam rose. His heart was light. He had never, of course, supposed that
  • the girl was anything but perfect; but it was nice to find his high
  • opinion of her corroborated by one who had no reason to exhibit her in a
  • favourable light. He understood her point of view and sympathised with
  • it. An idealist, how could she trust herself to Eustace Hignett? How
  • could she be content with a craven who, instead of scouring the world in
  • the quest for deeds of derring-do, had fallen down so lamentably on his
  • first assignment? There was a specious attractiveness about poor old
  • Eustace which might conceivably win a girl's heart for a time; he wrote
  • poetry, talked well, and had a nice singing voice; but, as a partner for
  • life ... well, he simply wouldn't do. That was all there was to it. He
  • simply didn't add up right. The man a girl like Wilhelmina Bennett
  • required for a husband was somebody entirely different ... somebody,
  • felt Samuel Marlowe, much more like Samuel Marlowe.
  • Swelled almost to bursting point with these reflections, he went on deck
  • to join the ante-luncheon promenade. He saw Billie almost at once. She
  • had put on one of those nice sacky sport-coats which so enhance feminine
  • charms, and was striding along the deck with the breeze playing in her
  • vivid hair like the female equivalent of a Viking. Beside her walked
  • young Mr. Bream Mortimer.
  • Sam had been feeling a good deal of a fellow already, but at the sight
  • of her welcoming smile his self-esteem almost caused him to explode.
  • What magic there is in a girl's smile! It is the raisin which, dropped
  • in the yeast of male complacency, induces fermentation.
  • "Oh, there you are, Mr. Marlowe!"
  • "Oh, _there_ you are," said Bream Mortimer with a slightly different
  • inflection.
  • "I thought I'd like a breath of fresh air before lunch," said Sam.
  • "Oh, Bream!" said the girl.
  • "Hello?"
  • "Do be a darling and take this great heavy coat of mine down to my
  • state-room, will you? I had no idea it was so warm."
  • "I'll carry it," said Bream.
  • "Nonsense! I wouldn't dream of burdening you with it. Trot along and put
  • it on the berth. It doesn't matter about folding it up."
  • "All right," said Bream moodily.
  • He trotted along. There are moments when a man feels that all he needs
  • in order to be a delivery wagon is a horse and a driver. Bream Mortimer
  • was experiencing such a moment.
  • "He had better chirrup to the dog while he's there, don't you think?"
  • suggested Sam. He felt that a resolute man with legs as long as Bream's
  • might well deposit a cloak on a berth and be back under the half-minute.
  • "Oh yes! Bream!"
  • "Hello?"
  • "While you're down there, just chirrup a little more to poor Pinky. He
  • does appreciate it so!"
  • Bream disappeared. It is not always easy to interpret emotion from a
  • glance at a man's back; but Bream's back looked like that of a man to
  • whom the thought has occurred that, given a couple of fiddles and a
  • piano, he would have made a good hired orchestra.
  • "How is your dear little dog, by the way?" inquired Sam solicitously, as
  • he fell into step by her side.
  • "Much better now, thanks. I've made friends with a girl on board--did
  • you ever hear her name--Jane Hubbard--she's a rather well-known big-game
  • hunter, and she fixed up some sort of a mixture for Pinky which did him
  • a world of good. I don't know what was in it except Worcester Sauce, but
  • she said she always gave it to her mules in Africa when they had the
  • botts ... it's very nice of you to speak so affectionately of poor Pinky
  • when he bit you."
  • "Animal spirits!" said Sam tolerantly. "Pure animal spirits. I like to
  • see them. But, of course, I love all dogs."
  • "Oh, do you? So do I!"
  • "I only wish they didn't fight so much. I'm always stopping dog-fights."
  • "I do admire a man who knows what to do at a dog-fight. I'm afraid I'm
  • rather helpless myself. There never seems anything to catch hold of."
  • She looked down. "Have you been reading? What is the book?"
  • "The book? Oh, this. It's a volume of Tennyson."
  • "Are you fond of Tennyson?"
  • "I worship him," said Sam reverently.
  • "Those----" he glanced at his cuff--"those 'Idylls of the King!' I do
  • not like to think what an ocean voyage would be if I had not my Tennyson
  • with me."
  • "We must read him together. He is my favourite poet!"
  • "We will! There is something about Tennyson...."
  • "Yes, isn't there! I've felt that myself so often."
  • "Some poets are whales at epics and all that sort of thing, while others
  • call it a day when they've written something that runs to a couple of
  • verses, but where Tennyson had the bulge was that his long game was just
  • as good as his short. He was great off the tee and a marvel with his
  • chip-shots."
  • "That sounds as though you play golf."
  • "When I am not reading Tennyson, you can generally find me out on the
  • links. Do you play?"
  • "I love it. How extraordinary that we should have so much in common. You
  • seem to like all the things I like. We really ought to be great
  • friends."
  • He was pausing to select the best of three replies when the lunch bugle
  • sounded.
  • "Oh dear!" she cried. "I must rush. But we shall see one another again
  • up here afterwards?"
  • "We will," said Sam.
  • "We'll sit and read Tennyson."
  • "Fine! Er--you and I and Mortimer?"
  • "Oh no, Bream is going to sit down below and look after poor Pinky."
  • "Does he--does he know he is?"
  • "Not yet," said Billie. "I'm going to tell him at lunch."
  • CHAPTER IV
  • SAM CLICKS
  • § 1
  • It was the fourth morning of the voyage. Of course, when this story is
  • done in the movies they won't be satisfied with a bald statement like
  • that; they will have a Spoken Title or a Cut-Back Sub-Caption or
  • whatever they call the thing in the low dens where motion-picture
  • scenario-lizards do their dark work, which will run:--
  • AND SO, CALM AND GOLDEN, THE DAYS WENT BY, EACH FRAUGHT WITH HOPE
  • AND YOUTH AND SWEETNESS, LINKING TWO YOUNG HEARTS IN SILKEN FETTERS
  • FORGED BY THE LAUGHING LOVE-GOD.
  • and the males in the audience will shift their chewing gum to the other
  • cheek and take a firmer grip of their companion's hands and the man at
  • the piano will play "Everybody wants a key to my cellar," or something
  • equally appropriate, very soulfully and slowly, with a wistful eye on
  • the half-smoked cigarette which he has parked on the lowest octave and
  • intends finishing as soon as the picture is over. But I prefer the plain
  • frank statement that it was the fourth day of the voyage. That is my
  • story and I mean to stick to it.
  • Samuel Marlowe, muffled in a bathrobe, came back to the state-room from
  • his tub. His manner had the offensive jauntiness of the man who has had
  • a cold bath when he might just as easily have had a hot one. He looked
  • out of the porthole at the shimmering sea. He felt strong and happy and
  • exuberant.
  • It was not merely the spiritual pride induced by a cold bath that was
  • uplifting this young man. The fact was that, as he towelled his glowing
  • back, he had suddenly come to the decision that this very day he would
  • propose to Wilhelmina Bennett. Yes, he would put his fortune to the
  • test, to win or lose it all. True, he had only known her for four days,
  • but what of that?
  • Nothing in the way of modern progress is more remarkable than the manner
  • in which the attitude of your lover has changed concerning proposals of
  • marriage. When Samuel Marlowe's grandfather had convinced himself,
  • after about a year and a half of respectful aloofness, that the emotion
  • which he felt towards Samuel Marlowe's grandmother-to-be was love, the
  • fashion of the period compelled him to approach the matter in a
  • roundabout way. First, he spent an evening or two singing sentimental
  • ballads, she accompanying him on the piano and the rest of the family
  • sitting on the side-lines to see that no rough stuff was pulled. Having
  • noted that she drooped her eyelashes and turned faintly pink when he
  • came to the "Thee--only thee!" bit, he felt a mild sense of
  • encouragement, strong enough to justify him in taking her sister aside
  • next day and asking if the object of his affections ever happened to
  • mention his name in the course of conversation. Further _pour-parlers_
  • having passed with her aunt, two more sisters, and her little brother,
  • he felt that the moment had arrived when he might send her a volume of
  • Shelley, with some of the passages marked in pencil. A few weeks later,
  • he interviewed her father and obtained his consent to the paying of his
  • addresses. And finally, after writing her a letter which began "Madam,
  • you will not have been insensible to the fact that for some time past
  • you have inspired in my bosom feelings deeper than those of ordinary
  • friendship...." he waylaid her in the rose-garden and brought the thing
  • off.
  • How different is the behaviour of the modern young man. His courtship
  • can hardly be called a courtship at all. His methods are those of Sir
  • W. S. Gilbert's Alphonso.
  • "Alphonso, who for cool assurance all creation licks,
  • He up and said to Emily who has cheek enough for six:
  • 'Miss Emily, I love you. Will you marry? Say the word!'
  • And Emily said: 'Certainly, Alphonso, like a bird!'"
  • Sam Marlowe was a warm supporter of the Alphonso method. He was a bright
  • young man and did not require a year to make up his mind that Wilhelmina
  • Bennett had been set apart by Fate from the beginning of time to be his
  • bride. He had known it from the moment he saw her on the dock, and all
  • the subsequent strolling, reading, talking, soup-drinking, tea-drinking,
  • and shuffle-board-playing which they had done together had merely
  • solidified his original impression. He loved this girl with all the
  • force of a fiery nature--the fiery nature of the Marlowes was a by-word
  • in Bruton Street, Berkeley Square--and something seemed to whisper that
  • she loved him. At any rate she wanted somebody like Sir Galahad, and,
  • without wishing to hurl bouquets at himself, he could not see where she
  • could possibly get anyone liker Sir Galahad than himself. So, wind and
  • weather permitting, Samuel Marlowe intended to propose to Wilhelmina
  • Bennett this very day.
  • He let down the trick basin which hung beneath the mirror and,
  • collecting his shaving materials, began to lather his face.
  • "I am the Bandolero!" sang Sam blithely through the soap. "I am, I am
  • the Bandolero! Yes, yes, I am the Bandolero!"
  • The untidy heap of bedclothes in the lower berth stirred restlessly.
  • "Oh, God!" said Eustace Hignett thrusting out a tousled head.
  • Sam regarded his cousin with commiseration. Horrid things had been
  • happening to Eustace during the last few days, and it was quite a
  • pleasant surprise each morning to find that he was still alive.
  • "Feeling bad again, old man?"
  • "I was feeling all right," replied Hignett churlishly, "until you began
  • the farmyard imitations. What sort of a day is it?"
  • "Glorious! The sea...."
  • "Don't talk about the sea!"
  • "Sorry! The sun is shining brighter than it has ever shone in the
  • history of the race. Why don't you get up?"
  • "Nothing will induce me to get up."
  • "Well, go a regular buster and have an egg for breakfast."
  • Eustace Hignett shuddered. He eyed Sam sourly. "You seem devilish
  • pleased with yourself this morning!" he said censoriously.
  • Sam dried the razor carefully and put it away. He hesitated. Then the
  • desire to confide in somebody got the better of him.
  • "The fact is," he said apologetically, "I'm in love!"
  • "In love!" Eustace Hignett sat up and bumped his head sharply against
  • the berth above him. "Has this been going on long?"
  • "Ever since the voyage started."
  • "I think you might have told me," said Eustace reproachfully. "I told
  • you my troubles. Why did you not let me know that this awful thing had
  • come upon you?"
  • "Well, as a matter of fact, old man, during these last few days I had a
  • notion that your mind was, so to speak, occupied elsewhere."
  • "Who is she?"
  • "Oh, a girl I met on board."
  • "Don't do it!" said Eustace Hignett solemnly. "As a friend I entreat you
  • not to do it. Take my advice, as a man who knows women, and don't do
  • it!"
  • "Don't do what?"
  • "Propose to her. I can tell by the glitter in your eye that you are
  • intending to propose to this girl--probably this morning."
  • "Not this morning--after lunch. I always think one can do oneself more
  • justice after lunch."
  • "Don't do it. Women are the devil, whether they marry you or jilt you.
  • Do you realise that women wear black evening dresses that have to be
  • hooked up in a hurry when you are late for the theatre, and that, out of
  • sheer wanton malignity, the hooks and eyes on those dresses are also
  • made black? Do you realise...?"
  • "Oh, I've thought it all out."
  • "And take the matter of children. How would you like to become the
  • father--and a mere glance around you will show you that the chances are
  • enormously in favour of such a thing happening--of a boy with spectacles
  • and protruding front teeth who asks questions all the time? Out of six
  • small boys whom I saw when I came on board, four wore spectacles and had
  • teeth like rabbits. The other two were equally revolting in different
  • styles. How would you like to become the father...?"
  • "There is no need to be indelicate," said Sam stiffly. "A man must take
  • these chances."
  • "Give her the miss in baulk," pleaded Hignett. "Stay down here for the
  • rest of the voyage. You can easily dodge her when you get to
  • Southampton. And, if she sends messages, say you're ill and can't be
  • disturbed."
  • Sam gazed at him, revolted. More than ever he began to understand how it
  • was that a girl with ideals had broken off her engagement with this man.
  • He finished dressing, and, after a satisfying breakfast, went on deck.
  • § 2
  • It was, as he had said, a glorious morning. The sample which he had had
  • through the porthole had not prepared him for the magic of it. The ship
  • swam in a vast bowl of the purest blue on an azure carpet flecked with
  • silver. It was a morning which impelled a man to great deeds, a morning
  • which shouted to him to chuck his chest out and be romantic. The sight
  • of Billie Bennett, trim and gleaming in a pale green sweater and white
  • skirt had the effect of causing Marlowe to alter the programme which he
  • had sketched out. Proposing to this girl was not a thing to be put off
  • till after lunch. It was a thing to be done now and at once. The finest
  • efforts of the finest cooks in the world could not put him in better
  • form than he felt at present.
  • "Good morning, Miss Bennett."
  • "Good morning, Mr. Marlowe."
  • "Isn't it a perfect day?"
  • "Wonderful!"
  • "It makes all the difference on board ship if the weather is fine."
  • "Yes, doesn't it?"
  • How strange it is that the great emotional scenes of history, one of
  • which is coming along almost immediately, always begin in this prosaic
  • way. Shakespeare tries to conceal the fact, but there can be little doubt
  • that Romeo and Juliet edged into their balcony scene with a few remarks
  • on the pleasantness of the morning.
  • "Shall we walk round?" said Billie.
  • Sam glanced about him. It was the time of day when the promenade deck
  • was always full. Passengers in cocoons of rugs lay on chairs, waiting in
  • a dull trance till the steward should arrive with the eleven o'clock
  • soup. Others, more energetic, strode up and down. From the point of view
  • of a man who wished to reveal his most sacred feelings to a beautiful
  • girl, the place was practically a tube station during the rush hour.
  • "It's so crowded," he said. "Let's go on to the upper deck."
  • "All right. You can read to me. Go and fetch your Tennyson."
  • Sam felt that fortune was playing into his hands. His four-days'
  • acquaintance with the bard had been sufficient to show him that the man
  • was there forty ways when it came to writing about love. You could open
  • his collected works almost anywhere and shut your eyes and dab down your
  • finger on some red-hot passage. A proposal of marriage is a thing which
  • it is rather difficult to bring neatly into the ordinary run of
  • conversation. It wants leading up to. But, if you once start reading
  • poetry, especially Tennyson's, almost anything is apt to give you your
  • cue. He bounded light-heartedly into the state-room, waking Eustace
  • Hignett from an uneasy dose.
  • "Now what?" said Eustace.
  • "Where's that copy of Tennyson you gave me? I left it--ah, here it is.
  • Well, see you later!"
  • "Wait! What are you going to do?"
  • "Oh, that girl I told you about," said Sam making for the door. "She
  • wants me to read Tennyson to her on the upper deck."
  • "Tennyson?"
  • "Yes."
  • "On the upper deck?"
  • "Yes."
  • "This is the end," said Eustace Hignett, turning his face to the wall.
  • Sam raced up the companion-way as far as it went; then, going out on
  • deck, climbed a flight of steps and found himself in the only part of
  • the ship which was ever even comparatively private. The main herd of
  • passengers preferred the promenade deck, two layers below.
  • He threaded his way through a maze of boats, ropes, and curious-shaped
  • steel structures which the architect of the ship seemed to have tacked
  • on at the last moment in a spirit of sheer exuberance. Above him towered
  • one of the funnels, before him a long, slender mast. He hurried on, and
  • presently came upon Billie sitting on a garden seat, backed by the white
  • roof of the smoke-room; beside this was a small deck which seemed to
  • have lost its way and strayed up here all by itself. It was the deck on
  • which one could occasionally see the patients playing an odd game with
  • long sticks and bits of wood--not shuffleboard but something even lower
  • in the mental scale. This morning, however, the devotees of this pastime
  • were apparently under proper restraint, for the deck was empty.
  • "This is jolly," he said sitting down beside the girl and drawing a deep
  • breath of satisfaction.
  • "Yes, I love this deck. It's so peaceful."
  • "It's the only part of the ship where you can be reasonably sure of not
  • meeting stout men in flannels and nautical caps. An ocean voyage always
  • makes me wish that I had a private yacht."
  • "It would be nice."
  • "A private yacht," repeated Sam, sliding a trifle closer. "We would sail
  • about, visiting desert islands which lay like jewels in the heart of
  • tropic seas."
  • "We?"
  • "Most certainly we. It wouldn't be any fun if you were not there."
  • "That's very complimentary."
  • "Well, it wouldn't. I'm not fond of girls as a rule...."
  • "Oh, aren't you?"
  • "No!" said Sam decidedly. It was a point which he wished to make clear
  • at the outset. "Not at all fond. My friends have often remarked upon it.
  • A palmist once told me that I had one of those rare spiritual natures
  • which cannot be satisfied with substitutes but must seek and seek till
  • they find their soul-mate. When other men all round me were frittering
  • away their emotions in idle flirtations which did not touch their deeper
  • natures, I was ... I was ... well, I wasn't, if you see what I mean."
  • "Oh, you wasn't ... weren't?"
  • "No. Some day I knew I should meet the only girl I could possibly love,
  • and then I would pour out upon her the stored-up devotion of a lifetime,
  • lay an unblemished heart at her feet, fold her in my arms and say 'At
  • last!'"
  • "How jolly for her. Like having a circus all to oneself."
  • "Well, yes," said Sam after a momentary pause.
  • "When I was a child I always thought that that would be the most
  • wonderful thing in the world."
  • "The most wonderful thing in the world is love, a pure and consuming
  • love, a love which...."
  • "Oh, hello!" said a voice.
  • All through this scene, right from the very beginning of it, Sam had not
  • been able to rid himself of a feeling that there was something missing.
  • The time and the place and the girl--they were all present and correct;
  • nevertheless there was something missing, some familiar object which
  • seemed to leave a gap. He now perceived that what had caused the feeling
  • was the complete absence of Bream Mortimer. He was absent no longer. He
  • was standing in front of them with one leg, his head lowered as if he
  • were waiting for someone to scratch it. Sam's primary impulse was to
  • offer him a nut.
  • "Oh, hello, Bream!" said Billie.
  • "Hullo!" said Sam.
  • "Hello!" said Bream Mortimer. "Here you are!"
  • There was a pause.
  • "I thought you might be here," said Bream.
  • "Yes, here we are," said Billie.
  • "Yes, we're here," said Sam.
  • There was another pause.
  • "Mind if I join you?" said Bream.
  • "N--no," said Billie.
  • "N--no," said Sam.
  • "No," said Billie again. "No ... that is to say ... oh no, no at all."
  • There was a third pause.
  • "On second thoughts," said Bream, "I believe I'll take a stroll on the
  • promenade deck if you don't mind."
  • They said they did not mind. Bream Mortimer, having bumped his head
  • twice against overhanging steel ropes, melted away.
  • "Who is that fellow?" demanded Sam wrathfully.
  • "He's the son of father's best friend."
  • Sam started. Somehow this girl had always been so individual to him that
  • he had never thought of her having a father.
  • "We have known each other all our lives," continued Billie. "Father
  • thinks a tremendous lot of Bream. I suppose it was because Bream was
  • sailing by her that father insisted on my coming over on this boat. I'm
  • in disgrace, you know I was cabled for and had to sail at a few days'
  • notice. I...."
  • "Oh, hello!"
  • "Why, Bream!" said Billie looking at him as he stood on the old spot in
  • the same familiar attitude with rather less affection than the son of
  • her father's best friend might have expected. "I thought you said you
  • were going down to the promenade deck.
  • "I did go down to the promenade deck. And I'd hardly got there when a
  • fellow who's getting up the ship's concert to-morrow night nobbled me to
  • do something for it. I said I could only do conjuring tricks and
  • juggling and so on, and he said all right, do conjuring tricks and
  • juggling, then. He wanted to know if I knew anyone else who would help.
  • I came up to ask you," he said to Sam, "if you would do something."
  • "No," said Sam. "I won't."
  • "He's got a man who's going to lecture on deep-sea fish and a couple of
  • women who both want to sing 'The Rosary' but he's still a turn or two
  • short. Sure you won't rally round?"
  • "Quite sure."
  • "Oh, all right." Bream Mortimer hovered wistfully above them. "It's a
  • great morning, isn't it?"
  • "Yes," said Sam.
  • "Oh, Bream!" said Billie.
  • "Hello?"
  • "Do be a pet and go and talk to Jane Hubbard. I'm sure she must be
  • feeling lonely. I left her all by herself down on the next deck."
  • A look of alarm spread itself over Bream's face.
  • "Jane Hubbard! Oh, say, have a heart!"
  • "She's a very nice girl."
  • "She's so darned dynamic. She looks at you as if you were a giraffe or
  • something and she would like to take a pot at you with a rifle."
  • "Nonsense! Run along. Get her to tell you some of her big-game hunting
  • experiences. They are most interesting."
  • Bream drifted sadly away.
  • "I don't blame Miss Hubbard," said Sam.
  • "What do you mean?"
  • "Looking at him as if she wanted to pot at him with a rifle. I should
  • like to do it myself."
  • "Oh, don't let's talk about Bream. Read me some Tennyson."
  • Sam opened the book very willingly. Infernal Bream Mortimer had
  • absolutely shot to pieces the spell which had begun to fall on them at
  • the beginning of their conversation. Only by reading poetry, it seemed
  • to him, could it be recovered. And when he saw the passage at which the
  • volume had opened he realised that his luck was in. Good old Tennyson!
  • He was all right. He had the stuff. You could rely on him every time.
  • He cleared his throat.
  • "Oh let the solid ground
  • Not fail beneath my feet
  • Before my life has found
  • What some have found so sweet;
  • Then let come what come may,
  • What matter if I go mad,
  • I shall have had my day.
  • Let the sweet heavens endure,
  • Not close and darken above me
  • Before I am quite quite sure
  • That there is one to love me...."
  • This was absolutely topping. It was like diving off a spring-board. He
  • could see the girl sitting with a soft smile on her face, her eyes, big
  • and dreamy, gazing out over the sunlit sea. He laid down the book and
  • took her hand.
  • "There is something," he began in a low voice, "which I have been trying
  • to say ever since we met, something which I think you must have read in
  • my eyes."
  • Her head was bent. She did not withdraw her hand.
  • "Until this voyage began," he went on, "I did not know what life meant.
  • And then I saw you! It was like the gate of heaven opening. You're the
  • dearest girl I ever met, and you can bet I'll never forget...." He
  • stopped. "I'm not trying to make it rhyme," he said apologetically.
  • "Billie, don't think me silly ... I mean ... if you had the merest
  • notion, dearest ... I don't know what's the matter with me ... Billie,
  • darling, you are the only girl in the world! I have been looking for you
  • for years and years and I have found you at last, my soul-mate. Surely
  • this does not come as a surprise to you? That is, I mean, you must have
  • seen that I've been keen.... There's that damned Walt Mason stuff
  • again!" His eyes fell on the volume beside him and he uttered an
  • exclamation of enlightenment. "It's those poems!" he cried. "I've been
  • boning them up to such an extent that they've got me doing it too. What
  • I'm trying to say is, Will you marry me?"
  • She was drooping towards him. Her face was very sweet and tender, her
  • eyes misty. He slid an arm about her waist. She raised her lips to his.
  • § 3
  • Suddenly she drew herself away, a cloud on her face.
  • "Darling," she said, "I've a confession to make."
  • "A confession? You? Nonsense!"
  • "I can't get rid of a horrible thought. I was wondering if this will
  • last."
  • "Our love? Don't be afraid that it will fade ... I mean ... why, it's so
  • vast, it's bound to last ... that is to say, of course it will."
  • She traced a pattern on the deck with her shoe.
  • "I'm afraid of myself. You see, once before--and it was not so very long
  • ago,--I thought I had met my ideal, but...."
  • Sam laughed heartily.
  • "Are you worrying about that absurd business of poor old Eustace
  • Hignett?"
  • She started violently.
  • "You know!"
  • "Of course! He told me himself."
  • "Do you know him? Where did you meet him?"
  • "I've known him all my life. He's my cousin. As a matter of fact, we are
  • sharing a state-room on board now."
  • "Eustace is on board! Oh, this is awful! What shall I do when I meet
  • him?"
  • "Oh, pass it off with a light laugh and a genial quip. Just say: 'Oh,
  • here you are!' or something. You know the sort of thing."
  • "It will be terrible."
  • "Not a bit of it. Why should you feel embarrassed? He must have realised
  • by now that you acted in the only possible way. It was absurd his ever
  • expecting you to marry him. I mean to say, just look at it
  • dispassionately ... Eustace ... poor old Eustace ... and _you_! The
  • Princess and the Swineherd!"
  • "Does Mr. Hignett keep pigs?" she asked, surprised.
  • "I mean that poor old Eustace is so far below you, darling, that, with
  • the most charitable intentions, one can only look on his asking you to
  • marry him in the light of a record exhibition of pure nerve. A dear,
  • good fellow, of course, but hopeless where the sterner realities of life
  • are concerned. A man who can't even stop a dog-fight! In a world which
  • is practically one seething mass of fighting dogs, how could you trust
  • yourself to such a one? Nobody is fonder of Eustace Hignett than I am,
  • but ... well, I mean to say!"
  • "I see what you mean. He really wasn't my ideal."
  • "Not by a mile!"
  • She mused, her chin in her hand.
  • "Of course, he was quite a dear in a lot of ways."
  • "Oh, a splendid chap," said Sam tolerantly.
  • "Have you ever heard him sing? I think what first attracted me to him
  • was his beautiful voice. He really sings extraordinarily well."
  • A slight but definite spasm of jealousy afflicted Sam. He had no
  • objection to praising poor old Eustace within decent limits, but the
  • conversation seemed to him to be confining itself too exclusively to one
  • subject.
  • "Yes?" he said. "Oh yes, I've heard him sing. Not lately. He does
  • drawing-room ballads and all that sort of thing still, I suppose?"
  • "Have you ever heard him sing 'My love is like a glowing tulip that in
  • an old-world garden grows'?"
  • "I have not had that advantage," replied Sam stiffly. "But anyone can
  • sing a drawing-room ballad. Now something funny, something that will
  • make people laugh, something that really needs putting across ... that's
  • a different thing altogether."
  • "Do you sing that sort of thing?"
  • "People have been good enough to say...."
  • "Then," said Billie decidedly, "you must certainly do something at the
  • ship's concert to-morrow! The idea of your trying to hide your light
  • under a bushel! I will tell Bream to count on you. He is an excellent
  • accompanist. He can accompany you."
  • "Yes, but ... well, I don't know," said Sam doubtfully. He could not
  • help remembering that the last time he had sung in public had been at a
  • house-supper at school, seven years before, and that on that occasion
  • somebody whom it was a lasting grief to him that he had been unable to
  • identify had thrown a pat of butter at him.
  • "Of course you must sing," said Billie. "I'll tell Bream when I go down
  • to lunch. What will you sing?"
  • "Well--er--"
  • "Well, I'm sure it will be wonderful whatever it is. You are so
  • wonderful in every way. You remind me of one of the heroes of old!"
  • Sam's discomposure vanished. In the first place, this was much more the
  • sort of conversation which he felt the situation indicated. In the
  • second place he had remembered that there was no need for him to sing at
  • all. He could do that imitation of Frank Tinney which had been such a
  • hit at the Trinity smoker. He was on safe ground there. He knew he was
  • good. He clasped the girl to him and kissed her sixteen times.
  • § 4
  • Billie Bennett stood in front of the mirror in her state-room dreamily
  • brushing the glorious red hair that fell in a tumbled mass about her
  • shoulders. On the lounge beside her, swathed in a business-like grey
  • kimono, Jane Hubbard watched her, smoking a cigarette.
  • Jane Hubbard was a splendid specimen of bronzed, strapping womanhood.
  • Her whole appearance spoke of the open air and the great wide spaces and
  • all that sort of thing. She was a thoroughly wholesome, manly girl,
  • about the same age as Billie, with a strong chin and an eye that had
  • looked leopards squarely in the face and caused them to withdraw abashed
  • into the undergrowth, or where-ever it is that leopards withdraw when
  • abashed. One could not picture Jane Hubbard flirting lightly at garden
  • parties, but one could picture her very readily arguing with a mutinous
  • native bearer, or with a firm touch putting sweetness and light into the
  • soul of a refractory mule. Boadicea in her girlhood must have been
  • rather like Jane Hubbard.
  • She smoked contentedly. She had rolled her cigarette herself with one
  • hand, a feat beyond the powers of all but the very greatest. She was
  • pleasantly tired after walking eighty-five times round the promenade
  • deck. Soon she would go to bed and fall asleep the moment her head
  • touched the pillow. But meanwhile she lingered here, for she felt that
  • Billie had something to confide in her.
  • "Jane," said Billie, "have you ever been in love?"
  • Jane Hubbard knocked the ash off her cigarette.
  • "Not since I was eleven," she said in her deep musical voice. "He was my
  • music-master. He was forty-seven and completely bald, but there was an
  • appealing weakness in him which won my heart. He was afraid of cats, I
  • remember."
  • Billie gathered her hair into a molten bundle and let it run through her
  • fingers.
  • "Oh, Jane!" she exclaimed. "Surely you don't like weak men. I like a man
  • who is strong and brave and wonderful."
  • "I can't stand brave men," said Jane, "it makes them so independent. I
  • could only love a man who would depend on me in everything. Sometimes,
  • when I have been roughing it out in the jungle," she went on rather
  • wistfully, "I have had my dreams of some gentle clinging man who would
  • put his hand in mine and tell me all his poor little troubles and let me
  • pet and comfort him and bring the smiles back to his face. I'm beginning
  • to want to settle down. After all there are other things for a woman to
  • do in this life besides travelling and big-game hunting. I should like
  • to go into Parliament. And, if I did that, I should practically have to
  • marry. I mean, I should have to have a man to look after the social end
  • of life and arrange parties and receptions and so on, and sit
  • ornamentally at the head of my table. I can't imagine anything jollier
  • than marriage under conditions like that. When I came back a bit done up
  • after a long sitting at the House, he would mix me a whisky-and-soda and
  • read poetry to me or prattle about all the things he had been doing
  • during the day.... Why, it would be ideal!"
  • Jane Hubbard gave a little sigh. Her fine eyes gazed dreamily at a smoke
  • ring which she had sent floating towards the ceiling.
  • "Jane," said Billie. "I believe you're thinking of somebody definite.
  • Who is he?"
  • The big-game huntress blushed. The embarrassment which she exhibited
  • made her look manlier than ever.
  • "I don't know his name."
  • "But there is really someone?"
  • "Yes."
  • "How splendid! Tell me about him."
  • Jane Hubbard clasped her strong hands and looked down at the floor.
  • "I met him on the Subway a couple of days before I left New York. You
  • know how crowded the Subway is at the rush hour. I had a seat, of
  • course, but this poor little fellow--_so_ good-looking, my dear! he
  • reminded me of the pictures of Lord Byron--was hanging from a strap and
  • being jerked about till I thought his poor little arms would be wrenched
  • out of their sockets. And he looked so unhappy, as though he had some
  • secret sorrow. I offered him my seat, but he wouldn't take it. A couple
  • of stations later, however, the man next to me got out and he sat down
  • and we got into conversation. There wasn't time to talk much. I told him
  • I had been down-town fetching an elephant-gun which I had left to be
  • mended. He was so prettily interested when I showed him the mechanism.
  • We got along famously. But--oh, well, it was just another case of ships
  • that pass in the night--I'm afraid I've been boring you."
  • "Oh, Jane! You haven't! You see ... you see, I'm in love myself."
  • "I had an idea you were," said her friend looking at her critically.
  • "You've been refusing your oats the last few days, and that's a sure
  • sign. Is he that fellow that's always around with you and who looks like
  • a parrot?"
  • "Bream Mortimer? Good gracious, no!" cried Billie indignantly. "As if I
  • should fall in love with Bream!"
  • "When I was out in British East Africa," said Miss Hubbard, "I had a
  • bird that was the living image of Bream Mortimer. I taught him to
  • whistle 'Annie Laurie' and to ask for his supper in three native
  • dialects. Eventually he died of the pip, poor fellow. Well, if it isn't
  • Bream Mortimer, who is it?"
  • "His name is Marlowe. He's tall and handsome and very strong-looking. He
  • reminds me of a Greek god."
  • "Ugh!" said Miss Hubbard.
  • "Jane, we're engaged."
  • "No!" said the huntress, interested. "When can I meet him?"
  • "I'll introduce you to-morrow I'm so happy."
  • "That's fine!"
  • "And yet, somehow," said Billie, plaiting her hair, "do you ever have
  • presentiments? I can't get rid of an awful feeling that something's
  • going to happen to spoil everything."
  • "What could spoil everything?"
  • "Well, I think him so wonderful, you know. Suppose he were to do
  • anything to blur the image I have formed of him."
  • "Oh, he won't. You said he was one of those strong men, didn't you? They
  • always run true to form. They never do anything except be strong."
  • Billie looked meditatively at her reflection in the glass.
  • "You know I thought I was in love once before, Jane."
  • "Yes?"
  • "We were going to be married and I had actually gone to the church. And
  • I waited and waited and he didn't come; and what do you think had
  • happened?"
  • "What?"
  • "His mother had stolen his trousers."
  • Jane Hubbard laughed heartily.
  • "It's nothing to laugh at," said Billie seriously "It was a tragedy. I
  • had always thought him romantic, and when this happened the scales
  • seemed to fall from my eyes. I saw that I had made a mistake."
  • "And you broke off the engagement?"
  • "Of course!"
  • "I think you were hard on him. A man can't help his mother stealing his
  • trousers."
  • "No. But when he finds they're gone, he can 'phone to the tailor for
  • some more or borrow the janitor's or do _something_. But he simply
  • stayed where he was and didn't do a thing. Just because he was too much
  • afraid of his mother to tell her straight out that he meant to be
  • married that day."
  • "Now that," said Miss Hubbard, "is just the sort of trait in a man which
  • would appeal to me. I like a nervous, shrinking man."
  • "I don't. Besides, it made him seem so ridiculous, and--I don't know why
  • it is--I can't forgive a man for looking ridiculous. Thank goodness, my
  • darling Sam couldn't look ridiculous, even if he tried. He's wonderful,
  • Jane. He reminds me of a knight of the Round Table. You ought to see his
  • eyes flash."
  • Miss Hubbard got up and stretched herself with a yawn.
  • "Well, I'll be on the promenade deck after breakfast to-morrow. If you
  • can arrange to have him flash his eyes then--say between nine-thirty and
  • ten--I shall be delighted to watch them."
  • CHAPTER V
  • PERSECUTION OF EUSTACE
  • "Good God!" cried Eustace Hignett.
  • He stared at the figure which loomed above him in the fading light which
  • came through the porthole of the state-room. The hour was seven-thirty,
  • and he had just woken from a troubled doze, full of strange nightmares,
  • and for the moment he thought that he must still be dreaming, for the
  • figure before him could have walked straight into any nightmare and no
  • questions asked. Then suddenly he became aware that it was his cousin,
  • Samuel Marlowe. As in the historic case of father in the pigstye, he
  • could tell him by his hat. But why was he looking like that? Was it
  • simply some trick of the uncertain light, or was his face really black
  • and had his mouth suddenly grown to six times its normal size and become
  • a vivid crimson?
  • Sam turned. He had been looking at himself in the mirror with a
  • satisfaction which, to the casual observer, his appearance would not
  • have seemed to justify. Hignett had not been suffering from a delusion.
  • His cousin's face was black; and, even as he turned, he gave it a dab
  • with a piece of burnt cork and made it blacker.
  • "Hullo! You awake?" he said, and switched on the light.
  • Eustace Hignett shied like a startled horse. His friend's profile, seen
  • dimly, had been disconcerting enough. Full face, he was a revolting
  • object. Nothing that Eustace Hignett had encountered in his recent
  • dreams--and they had included such unusual fauna as elephants in top
  • hats and running shorts--had affected him so profoundly. Sam's
  • appearance smote him like a blow. It seemed to take him straight into a
  • different and a dreadful world.
  • "What ... what ... what...?" he gurgled.
  • Sam squinted at himself in the glass and added a touch of black to his
  • nose.
  • "How do I look?"
  • Eustace Hignett began to fear that his cousin's reason must have become
  • unseated. He could not conceive of any really sane man, looking like
  • that, being anxious to be told how he looked.
  • "Are my lips red enough? It's for the ship's concert, you know. It
  • starts in half-an-hour, though I believe I'm not on till the second
  • part. Speaking as a friend, would you put a touch more black round the
  • ears, or are they all right?"
  • Curiosity replaced apprehension in Hignett's mind.
  • "What on earth are you doing performing at the ship's concert?"
  • "Oh, they roped me in. It got about somehow that I was a valuable man,
  • and they wouldn't take no." Sam deepened the colour of his ears. "As a
  • matter of fact," he said casually, "my fiancée made rather a point of my
  • doing something."
  • A sharp yelp from the lower berth proclaimed the fact that the
  • significance of the remark had not been lost on Eustace.
  • "Your fiancée?"
  • "The girl I'm engaged to. Didn't I tell you about that? Yes, I'm
  • engaged."
  • Eustace sighed heavily.
  • "I feared the worst. Tell me, who is she?"
  • "Didn't I tell you her name?"
  • "No."
  • "Curious! I must have forgotten." He hummed an airy strain as he
  • blackened the tip of his nose. "It's rather a curious coincidence,
  • really. Her name is Bennett."
  • "She may be a relation."
  • "That's true. Of course, girls do have relations."
  • "What is her first name?"
  • "That is another rather remarkable thing. It's Wilhelmina."
  • "Wilhelmina!"
  • "Of course, there must be hundreds of girls in the world called
  • Wilhelmina Bennett, but still it is a coincidence."
  • "What colour is her hair?" demanded Eustace Hignett in a hollow voice.
  • "Her hair! What colour is it?"
  • "Her hair? Now, let me see. You ask me what colour is her hair. Well,
  • you might call it auburn ... or russet ... or you might call it
  • Titian...."
  • "Never mind what I might call it. Is it red?"
  • "Red? Why, yes. That is a very good description of it. Now that you put
  • it to me like that, it _is_ red."
  • "Has she a trick of grabbing at you suddenly, when she gets excited,
  • like a kitten with a ball of wool?"
  • "Yes. Yes, she has."
  • Eustace Hignett uttered a sharp cry.
  • "Sam," he said, "can you bear a shock?"
  • "I'll have a dash at it."
  • "Brace up!"
  • "I'm ready."
  • "The girl you are engaged to is the same girl who promised to marry
  • _me_."
  • "Well, well!" said Sam.
  • There was a silence.
  • "Awfully sorry, of course, and all that," said Sam.
  • "Don't apologise to _me_!" said Eustace. "My poor old chap, my only
  • feeling towards you is one of the purest and profoundest pity." He
  • reached out and pressed Sam's hand. "I regard you as a toad beneath the
  • harrow!"
  • "Well, I suppose that's one way of offering congratulations and cheery
  • good wishes."
  • "And on top of that," went on Eustace, deeply moved, "you have got to
  • sing at the ship's concert."
  • "Why shouldn't I sing at the ship's concert?"
  • "My dear old man, you have many worthy qualities, but you must know that
  • you can't sing. You can't sing for nuts! I don't want to discourage you,
  • but, long ago as it is, you can't have forgotten what an ass you made of
  • yourself at that house-supper at school. Seeing you up against it like
  • this, I regret that I threw a lump of butter at you on that occasion,
  • though at the time it seemed the only course to pursue."
  • Sam started.
  • "Was it you who threw that bit of butter?"
  • "It was."
  • "I wish I'd known! You silly chump, you ruined my collar."
  • "Ah, well, it's seven years ago. You would have had to send it to the
  • wash anyhow by this time. But don't let us brood on the past. Let us put
  • our heads together and think how we can get you out of this terrible
  • situation."
  • "I don't want to get out of it. I confidently expect to be the hit of
  • the evening."
  • "The hit of the evening! You! Singing!"
  • "I'm not going to sing. I'm going to do that imitation of Frank Tinney
  • which I did at the Trinity smoker. You haven't forgotten that? You were
  • at the piano taking the part of the conductor of the orchestra. What a
  • riot I was--we were! I say, Eustace, old man, I suppose you don't feel
  • well enough to come up now and take your old part? You could do it
  • without a rehearsal. You remember how it went.... 'Hullo, Ernest!'
  • 'Hullo, Frank!' Why not come along?"
  • "The only piano I will ever sit at will be one firmly fixed on a floor
  • that does not heave and wobble under me."
  • "Nonsense! The boat's as steady as a rock now. The sea's like a
  • mill-pond."
  • "Nevertheless, thanking you for your suggestion, no!"
  • "Oh, well, then I shall have to get on as best I can with that fellow
  • Mortimer. We've been rehearsing all the afternoon, and he seems to have
  • the hang of the thing. But he won't be really right. He has no pep, no
  • vim. Still, if you won't ... well, I think I'll be getting along to his
  • state-room. I told him I would look in for a last rehearsal."
  • The door closed behind Sam, and Eustace Hignett, lying on his back, gave
  • himself up to melancholy meditation. He was deeply disturbed by his
  • cousin's sad story. He knew what it meant being engaged to Wilhelmina
  • Bennett. It was like being taken aloft in a balloon and dropped with a
  • thud on the rocks.
  • His reflections were broken by the abrupt opening of the door. Sam
  • rushed in. Eustace peered anxiously out of his berth. There was too
  • much burnt cork on his cousin's face to allow of any real registering of
  • emotion, but he could tell from his manner that all was not well.
  • "What's the matter?"
  • Sam sank down on the lounge.
  • "The bounder has quit!"
  • "The bounder? What bounder?"
  • "There is only one! Bream Mortimer, curse him! There may be others whom
  • thoughtless critics rank as bounders, but he is the only man really
  • deserving of the title. He refuses to appear! He has walked out on the
  • act! He has left me flat! I went into his state-room just now, as
  • arranged, and the man was lying on his bunk, groaning."
  • "I thought you said the sea was like a mill-pond."
  • "It wasn't that! He's perfectly fit. But it seems that the silly ass
  • took it into his head to propose to Billie just before
  • dinner--apparently he's loved her for years in a silent, self-effacing
  • way--and of course she told him that she was engaged to me, and the
  • thing upset him to such an extent that he says the idea of sitting down
  • at a piano and helping me give an imitation of Frank Tinney revolts him.
  • He says he intends to spend the evening in bed, reading Schopenhauer I
  • hope it chokes him!"
  • "But this is splendid! This lets you out."
  • "What do you mean? Lets me out?"
  • "Why, now you won't be able to appear. Oh, you will be thankful for this
  • in years to come."
  • "Won't I appear! Won't I dashed well appear! Do you think I'm going to
  • disappoint that dear girl when she is relying on me? I would rather
  • die."
  • "But you can't appear without a pianist."
  • "I've got a pianist."
  • "You have?"
  • "Yes. A little undersized shrimp of a fellow with a green face and ears
  • like water-wings."
  • "I don't think I know him."
  • "Yes, you do. He's you!"
  • "Me!"
  • "Yes, you. You are going to sit at the piano to-night."
  • "I'm sorry to disappoint you, but it's impossible. I gave you my views
  • on the subject just now."
  • "You've altered them."
  • "I haven't."
  • "Well, you soon will, and I'll tell you why. If you don't get up out of
  • that damned berth you've been roosting in all your life, I'm going to
  • ring for J. B. Midgeley and I'm going to tell him to bring me a bit of
  • dinner in here and I'm going to eat it before your eyes."
  • "But you've had dinner."
  • "Well, I'll have another. I feel just ready for a nice fat pork
  • chop...."
  • "Stop! Stop!"
  • "A nice fat pork chop with potatoes and lots of cabbage," repeated Sam
  • firmly. "And I shall eat it here on this very lounge. Now how do we go?"
  • "You wouldn't do that!" said Eustace piteously.
  • "I would and will."
  • "But I shouldn't be any good at the piano. I've forgotten how the thing
  • used to go."
  • "You haven't done anything of the kind. I come in and say 'Hullo,
  • Ernest!' and you say 'Hullo, Frank!' and then you help me tell the story
  • about the Pullman car. A child could do your part of it."
  • "Perhaps there is some child on board...."
  • "No. I want you. I shall feel safe with you. We've done it together
  • before."
  • "But, honestly, I really don't think ... it isn't as if...."
  • Sam rose and extended a finger towards the bell.
  • "Stop! Stop!" cried Eustace Hignett. "I'll do it!"
  • Sam withdrew his finger.
  • "Good!" he said. "We've just got time for a rehearsal while you're
  • dressing. 'Hullo, Ernest!'"
  • "'Hullo, Frank,'" said Eustace Hignett brokenly as he searched for his
  • unfamiliar trousers.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • SCENE AT A SHIP'S CONCERT
  • Ships' concerts are given in aid of the Seamen's Orphans and Widows,
  • and, after one has been present at a few of them, one seems to feel that
  • any right-thinking orphan or widow would rather jog along and take a
  • chance of starvation than be the innocent cause of such things. They
  • open with a long speech from the master of the ceremonies--so long, as a
  • rule, that it is only the thought of what is going to happen afterwards
  • that enables the audience to bear it with fortitude. This done, the
  • amateur talent is unleashed, and the grim work begins.
  • It was not till after the all too brief intermission for rest and
  • recuperation that the newly-formed team of Marlowe and Hignett was
  • scheduled to appear. Previous to this there had been dark deeds done in
  • the quiet saloon. The lecturer on deep-sea fish had fulfilled his threat
  • and spoken at great length on a subject which, treated by a master of
  • oratory, would have palled on the audience after ten or fifteen minutes;
  • and at the end of fifteen minutes this speaker had only just got past
  • the haddocks and was feeling his way tentatively through the shrimps.
  • "The Rosary" had been sung and there was an uneasy doubt as to whether
  • it was not going to be sung again after the interval--the latest rumour
  • being that the second of the rival lady singers had proved adamant to
  • all appeals and intended to fight the thing out on the lines she had
  • originally chosen if they put her in irons.
  • A young man had recited "Gunga Din" and, wilfully misinterpreting the
  • gratitude of the audience that it was over for a desire for more, had
  • followed it with "Fuzzy-Wuzzy." His sister--these things run in
  • families--had sung "My Little Gray Home in the West"--rather sombrely,
  • for she had wanted to sing "The Rosary," and, with the same obtuseness
  • which characterised her brother, had come back and rendered plantation
  • songs. The audience was now examining its programmes in the interval of
  • silence in order to ascertain the duration of the sentence still
  • remaining unexpired.
  • It was shocked to read the following:--
  • 7. A Little Imitation......S. Marlowe.
  • All over the saloon you could see fair women and brave men wilting in
  • their seats. Imitation...! The word, as Keats would have said, was like
  • a knell! Many of these people were old travellers and their minds went
  • back wincingly, as one recalls forgotten wounds, to occasions when
  • performers at ships' concerts had imitated whole strings of Dickens'
  • characters or, with the assistance of a few hats and a little false
  • hair, had endeavoured to portray Napoleon, Bismarck, Shakespeare, and
  • other of the famous dead. In this printed line on the programme there
  • was nothing to indicate the nature or scope of the imitation which this
  • S. Marlowe proposed to inflict upon them. They could only sit and wait
  • and hope that it would be short.
  • There was a sinking of hearts as Eustace Hignett moved down the room and
  • took his place at the piano. A pianist! This argued more singing. The
  • more pessimistic began to fear that the imitation was going to be one of
  • those imitations of well-known opera artistes which, though rare, do
  • occasionally add to the horrors of ships' concerts. They stared at
  • Hignett apprehensively. There seemed to be something ominous in the
  • man's very aspect. His face was very pale and set, the face of one
  • approaching a task at which his humanity shudders. They could not know
  • that the pallor of Eustace Hignett was due entirely to the slight tremor
  • which, even on the calmest nights, the engines of an ocean liner produce
  • in the flooring of a dining saloon, and to that faint, yet well-defined,
  • smell of cooked meats which clings to a room where a great many people
  • have recently been eating a great many meals. A few beads of cold
  • perspiration were clinging to Eustace Hignett's brow. He looked straight
  • before him with unseeing eyes. He was thinking hard of the Sahara.
  • So tense was Eustace's concentration that he did not see Billie
  • Bennett, seated in the front row. Billie had watched him enter with a
  • little thrill of embarrassment. She wished that she had been content
  • with one of the seats at the back. But Jane Hubbard had insisted on the
  • front row. She always had a front-row seat at witch dances in Africa,
  • and the thing had become a habit.
  • In order to avoid recognition for as long as possible, Billie now put up
  • her fan and turned to Jane. She was surprised to see that her friend was
  • staring eagerly before her with a fixity almost equal to that of
  • Eustace. Under her breath she muttered an exclamation of surprise in one
  • of the lesser-known dialects of Northern Nigeria.
  • "Billie!" she whispered sharply.
  • "What _is_ the matter, Jane?"
  • "Who is that man at the piano? Do you know him?"
  • "As a matter of fact, I do," said Billie. "His name is Hignett. Why?"
  • "It's the man I met on the Subway!" She breathed a sigh. "Poor little
  • fellow, how miserable he looks!"
  • At this moment their conversation was interrupted. Eustace Hignett,
  • pulling himself together with a painful effort, raised his hands and
  • struck a crashing chord, and, as he did so, there appeared through the
  • door at the far end of the saloon a figure at the sight of which the
  • entire audience started convulsively with the feeling that a worse thing
  • had befallen them than even they had looked for.
  • The figure was richly clad in some scarlet material. Its face was a
  • grisly black and below the nose appeared what seemed a horrible gash. It
  • advanced towards them, smoking a cigar.
  • "Hullo, Ernest," it said.
  • And then it seemed to pause expectantly, as though desiring some reply.
  • Dead silence reigned in the saloon.
  • "Hullo, Ernest!"
  • Those nearest the piano--and nobody more quickly than Jane Hubbard--now
  • observed that the white face of the man on the stool had grown whiter
  • still. His eyes gazed out glassily from under his damp brow. He looked
  • like a man who was seeing some ghastly sight. The audience sympathised
  • with him. They felt like that, too.
  • In all human plans there is ever some slight hitch, some little
  • miscalculation which just makes all the difference. A moment's thought
  • should have told Eustace Hignett that a half-smoked cigar was one of the
  • essential properties to any imitation of the eminent Mr. Tinney; but he
  • had completely overlooked the fact. The cigar came as an absolute
  • surprise to him and it could not have affected him more powerfully if it
  • had been a voice from the tomb. He stared at it pallidly, like Macbeth
  • at the ghost of Banquo. It was a strong, lively young cigar, and its
  • curling smoke played lightly about his nostrils. His jaw fell. His eyes
  • protruded. He looked for a long moment like one of those deep-sea fishes
  • concerning which the recent lecturer had spoken so searchingly. Then
  • with the cry of a stricken animal, he bounded from his seat and fled for
  • the deck.
  • There was a rustle at Billie's side as Jane Hubbard rose and followed
  • him. Jane was deeply stirred. Even as he sat, looking so pale and
  • piteous, at the piano, her big heart had gone out to him, and now, in
  • his moment of anguish, he seemed to bring to the surface everything that
  • was best and manliest in her nature. Thrusting aside with one sweep of
  • her powerful arm a steward who happened to be between her and the door,
  • she raced in pursuit.
  • Sam Marlowe had watched his cousin's dash for the open with a
  • consternation so complete that his senses seemed to have left him. A
  • general, deserted by his men on some stricken field, might have felt
  • something akin to his emotion. Of all the learned professions, the
  • imitation of Mr. Frank Tinney is the one which can least easily be
  • carried through single-handed. The man at the piano, the leader of the
  • orchestra, is essential. He is the life-blood of the entertainment.
  • Without him, nothing can be done.
  • For an instant Sam stood there, gaping blankly. Then the open door of
  • the saloon seemed to beckon an invitation. He made for it, reached it,
  • passed through it. That concluded his efforts in aid of the Seamen's
  • Orphans and Widows.
  • The spell which had lain on the audience broke. This imitation seemed to
  • them to possess in an extraordinary measure the one quality which
  • renders amateur imitations tolerable, that of brevity. They had seen
  • many amateur imitations, but never one as short as this. The saloon
  • echoed with their applause.
  • It brought no balm to Samuel Marlowe. He did not hear it. He had fled
  • for refuge to his state-room and was lying in the lower berth, chewing
  • the pillow, a soul in torment.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • SUNDERED HEARTS
  • There was a tap at the door. Sam sat up dizzily. He had lost all count
  • of time.
  • "Who's that?"
  • "I have a note for you, sir."
  • It was the level voice of J. B. Midgeley, the steward. The stewards of
  • the White Star Line, besides being the civillest and most obliging body
  • of men in the world, all have soft and pleasant voices. A White Star
  • steward, waking you up at six-thirty, to tell you that your bath is
  • ready, when you wanted to sleep on till twelve, is the nearest human
  • approach to the nightingale.
  • "A what?"
  • "A note, sir."
  • Sam jumped up and switched on the light. He went to the door and took
  • the note from J. B. Midgeley, who, his mission accomplished, retired in
  • an orderly manner down the passage. Sam looked at the letter with a
  • thrill. He had never seen the handwriting before, but, with the eye of
  • love, he recognised it. It was just the sort of hand he would have
  • expected Billie to write, round and smooth and flowing, the writing of a
  • warm-hearted girl. He tore open the envelope.
  • "Please come up to the top deck. I want to speak to you."
  • Sam could not disguise it from himself that he was a little
  • disappointed. I don't know if you see anything wrong with the letter,
  • but the way Sam looked at it was that, for a first love-letter, it might
  • have been longer and perhaps a shade warmer. And, without running any
  • risk of writer's cramp, she might have signed it.
  • However, these were small matters. No doubt the dear girl had been in a
  • hurry and so forth. The important point was that he was going to see
  • her. When a man's afraid, sings the bard, a beautiful maid is a cheering
  • sight to see; and the same truth holds good when a man has made an
  • exhibition of himself at a ship's concert. A woman's gentle sympathy,
  • that was what Samuel Marlowe wanted more than anything else at the
  • moment. That, he felt, was what the doctor ordered. He scrubbed the
  • burnt cork off his face with all possible speed and changed his clothes
  • and made his way to the upper deck. It was like Billie, he felt, to have
  • chosen this spot for their meeting. It would be deserted and it was
  • hallowed for them both by sacred associations.
  • She was standing at the rail, looking out over the water. The moon was
  • quite full. Out on the horizon to the south its light shone on the sea,
  • making it look like the silver beach of some distant fairy island. The
  • girl appeared to be wrapped in thought and it was not till the sharp
  • crack of Sam's head against an overhanging stanchion announced his
  • approach, that she turned.
  • "Oh, is that you?"
  • "Yes."
  • "You've been a long time."
  • "It wasn't an easy job," explained Sam, "getting all that burnt cork
  • off. You've no notion how the stuff sticks. You have to use butter...."
  • She shuddered.
  • "Don't!"
  • "But I did. You have to with burnt cork."
  • "Don't tell me these horrible things." Her voice rose almost
  • hysterically. "I never want to hear the words burnt cork mentioned again
  • as long as I live."
  • "I feel exactly the same." Sam moved to her side. "Darling," he said in
  • a low voice, "it was like you to ask me to meet you here. I know what
  • you were thinking. You thought that I should need sympathy. You wanted
  • to pet me, to smooth my wounded feelings, to hold me in your arms and
  • tell me that, as we loved each other, what did anything else matter?"
  • "I didn't."
  • "You didn't?"
  • "No, I didn't."
  • "Oh, you didn't? I thought you did!" He looked at her wistfully. "I
  • thought," he said, "that possibly you might have wished to comfort me.
  • I have been through a great strain. I have had a shock...."
  • "And what about me?" she demanded passionately. "Haven't I had a shock?"
  • He melted at once.
  • "Have you had a shock too? Poor little thing! Sit down and tell me all
  • about it."
  • She looked away from him, her face working.
  • "Can't you understand what a shock I have had? I thought you were the
  • perfect knight."
  • "Yes, isn't it?"
  • "Isn't what?"
  • "I thought you said it was a perfect night."
  • "I said I thought _you_ were the perfect knight."
  • "Oh, ah!"
  • A sailor crossed the deck, a dim figure in the shadows, went over to a
  • sort of raised summerhouse with a brass thingummy in it, fooled about
  • for a moment, and went away again. Sailors earn their money easily.
  • "Yes?" said Sam when he had gone.
  • "I forget what I was saying."
  • "Something about my being the perfect knight."
  • "Yes. I thought you were."
  • "That's good."
  • "But you're not!"
  • "No?"
  • "No!"
  • "Oh!"
  • Silence fell. Sam was feeling hurt and bewildered. He could not
  • understand her mood. He had come up expecting to be soothed and
  • comforted and she was like a petulant iceberg. Cynically, he recalled
  • some lines of poetry which he had had to write out a hundred times on
  • one occasion at school as a punishment for having introduced a white
  • mouse into chapel.
  • "Oh, woman, in our hours of ease,
  • Un-something, something, something, please.
  • When tiddly-umpty umpty brow,
  • A something something something thou!"
  • He had forgotten the exact words, but the gist of it had been that
  • Woman, however she might treat a man in times of prosperity, could be
  • relied on to rally round and do the right thing when he was in trouble.
  • How little the poet had known woman.
  • "Why not?" he said huffily.
  • She gave a little sob.
  • "I put you on a pedestal and I find you have feet of clay. You have
  • blurred the image which I formed of you. I can never think of you again
  • without picturing you as you stood in that saloon, stammering and
  • helpless...."
  • "Well, what can you do when your pianist runs out on you?"
  • "You could have done _something_!" The words she had spoken only
  • yesterday to Jane Hubbard came back to her. "I can't forgive a man for
  • looking ridiculous. Oh, what, what," she cried, "induced you to try to
  • give an imitation of Bert Williams?"
  • Sam started, stung to the quick.
  • "It wasn't Bert Williams. It was Frank Tinney!"
  • "Well, how was I to know?"
  • "I did my best," said Sam sullenly.
  • "That is the awful thought."
  • "I did it for your sake."
  • "I know. It gives me a horrible sense of guilt." She shuddered again.
  • Then suddenly, with the nervous quickness of a woman unstrung, thrust a
  • small black golliwog into his hand. "Take it!"
  • "What's this?"
  • "You bought it for me yesterday at the barber's shop. It is the only
  • present which you have given me. Take it back."
  • "I don't want it. I shouldn't know what to do with it."
  • "You must take it," she said in a low voice. "It is a symbol."
  • "A what?"
  • "A symbol of our broken love."
  • "I don't see how you make that out. It's a golliwog."
  • "I can never marry you now."
  • "What! Good heavens! Don't be absurd."
  • "I can't!"
  • "Oh, go on, have a dash at it," he said encouragingly, though his heart
  • was sinking.
  • She shook her head.
  • "No, I couldn't."
  • "Oh, hang it all!"
  • "I couldn't. I'm a very strange girl...."
  • "You're a very silly girl...."
  • "I don't see what right you have to say that," she flared.
  • "I don't see what right you have to say you can't marry me and try to
  • load me up with golliwogs," he retorted with equal heat.
  • "Oh, can't you understand?"
  • "No, I'm dashed if I can."
  • She looked at him despondently.
  • "When I said I would marry you, you were a hero to me. You stood to me
  • for everything that was noble and brave and wonderful. I had only to
  • shut my eyes to conjure up the picture of you as you dived off the rail
  • that morning. Now--" her voice trembled "--if I shut my eyes now, I can
  • only see a man with a hideous black face making himself the laughing
  • stock of the ship. How could I marry you, haunted by that picture?"
  • "But, good heavens, you talk as though I made a habit of blacking up!
  • You talk as though you expected me to come to the altar smothered in
  • burnt cork."
  • "I shall always think of you as I saw you to-night." She looked at him
  • sadly. "There's a bit of black still on your left ear."
  • He tried to take her hand. But she drew it away. He fell back as if
  • struck.
  • "So this is the end," he muttered.
  • "Yes. It's partly on your ear and partly on your cheek."
  • "So this is the end," he repeated.
  • "You had better go below and ask your steward to give you some more
  • butter."
  • He laughed bitterly.
  • "Well, I might have expected it. I might have known what would happen!
  • Eustace warned me. Eustace was right. He knows women--as I do now.
  • Women! What mighty ills have not been done by woman? Who was't betrayed
  • the what's-its-name? A woman! Who lost ... lost ... who lost ...
  • who--er--and so on? A woman.... So all is over! There is nothing to be
  • said but good-bye?"
  • "No."
  • "Good-bye, then, Miss Bennett!"
  • "Good-bye," said Billie sadly. "I--I'm sorry."
  • "Don't mention it!"
  • "You do understand, don't you?"
  • "You have made everything perfectly clear."
  • "I hope--I hope you won't be unhappy."
  • "Unhappy!" Sam produced a strangled noise from his larynx like the cry
  • of a shrimp in pain. "Unhappy! Ha! ha! I'm not unhappy! Whatever gave
  • you that idea? I'm smiling! I'm laughing! I feel I've had a merciful
  • escape. Oh, ha, ha!"
  • "It's very unkind and rude of you to say that."
  • "It reminds me of a moving picture I saw in New York. It was called
  • 'Saved from the Scaffold.'"
  • "Oh!"
  • "I'm not unhappy! What have I got to be unhappy about? What on earth
  • does any man want to get married for? I don't. Give me my gay bachelor
  • life! My Uncle Charlie used to say 'It's better luck to get married
  • than it is to be kicked in the head by a mule.' But _he_ was a man who
  • always looked on the bright side. Good-night, Miss Bennett. And
  • good-bye--for ever."
  • He turned on his heel and strode across the deck. From a white heaven
  • the moon still shone benignantly down, mocking him. He had spoken
  • bravely; the most captious critic could not but have admitted that he
  • had made a good exit. But already his heart was aching.
  • As he drew near to his state-room, he was amazed and disgusted to hear a
  • high tenor voice raised in song proceeding from behind the closed door.
  • "I fee-er naw faw in shee-ining arr-mor,
  • Though his lance be sharrrp and--er keen;
  • But I fee-er, I fee-er the glah-mour
  • Therough thy der-rooping lashes seen:
  • I fee-er, I fee-er the glah-mour...."
  • Sam flung open the door wrathfully. That Eustace Hignett should still be
  • alive was bad--he had pictured him hurling himself overboard and bobbing
  • about, a pleasing sight in the wake of the vessel; that he should be
  • singing was an outrage. Remorse, Sam felt, should have stricken Eustace
  • Hignett dumb. Instead of which, here he was comporting himself like a
  • blasted linnet. It was all wrong. The man could have no conscience
  • whatever.
  • "Well," he said sternly, "so there you are!"
  • Eustace Hignett looked up brightly, even beamingly. In the brief
  • interval which had elapsed since Sam had seen him last, an extraordinary
  • transformation had taken place in this young man. His wan look had
  • disappeared. His eyes were bright. His face wore that beastly
  • self-satisfied smirk which you see in pictures advertising certain makes
  • of fine-mesh underwear. If Eustace Hignett had been a full-page drawing
  • in a magazine with "My dear fellow, I always wear Sigsbee's Super-fine
  • Featherweight!" printed underneath him, he could not have looked more
  • pleased with himself.
  • "Hullo!" he said. "I was wondering where you had got to."
  • "Never mind," said Sam coldly, "where I had got to! Where did you get to
  • and why? You poor, miserable worm," he went on in a burst of generous
  • indignation, "what have you to say for yourself? What do you mean by
  • dashing away like that and killing my little entertainment?"
  • "Awfully sorry, old man. I hadn't foreseen the cigar. I was bearing up
  • tolerably well till I began to sniff the smoke. Then everything seemed
  • to go black--I don't mean you, of course. You were black already--and I
  • got the feeling that I simply must get on deck and drown myself."
  • "Well, why didn't you?" demanded Sam with a strong sense of injury. "I
  • might have forgiven you then. But to come down here and find you
  • singing...."
  • A soft light came into Eustace Hignett's eyes.
  • "I want to tell you all about that," he said.
  • "It's the most astonishing story. A miracle, you might almost call it.
  • Makes you believe in Fate and all that kind of thing. A week ago I was
  • on the Subway in New York...."
  • He broke off while Sam cursed him, the Subway, and the city of New York
  • in the order named.
  • "My dear chap, what is the matter?"
  • "What is the matter? Ha!"
  • "Something is the matter," persisted Eustace Hignett. "I can tell it by
  • your manner. Something has happened to disturb and upset you. I know you
  • so well that I can pierce the mask. What is it? Tell me!"
  • "Ha, ha!"
  • "You surely can't still be brooding on that concert business? Why,
  • that's all over. I take it that after my departure you made the most
  • colossal ass of yourself, but why let that worry you? These things
  • cannot affect one permanently."
  • "Can't they? Let me tell you that, as a result of that concert, my
  • engagement is broken off."
  • Eustace sprang forward with outstretched hand.
  • "Not really? How splendid! Accept my congratulations! This is the finest
  • thing that could possibly have happened. These are not idle words. As
  • one who has been engaged to the girl himself, I speak feelingly. You are
  • well out of it, Sam."
  • Sam thrust aside his hand. Had it been his neck he might have clutched
  • it eagerly, but he drew the line at shaking hands with Eustace Hignett.
  • "My heart is broken," he said with dignity.
  • "That feeling will pass, giving way to one of devout thankfulness. I
  • know. I've been there. After all ... Wilhelmina Bennett ... what is she?
  • A rag and a bone and a hank of hair!"
  • "She is nothing of the kind," said Sam, revolted.
  • "Pardon me," said Eustace firmly, "I speak as an expert. I know her and
  • I repeat, she is a rag and a bone and a hank of hair!"
  • "She is the only girl in the world, and, owing to your idiotic
  • behaviour, I have lost her."
  • "You speak of the only girl in the world," said Eustace blithely. "If
  • you want to hear about the only girl in the world, I will tell you. A
  • week ago I was on the Subway in New York...."
  • "I'm going to bed," said Sam brusquely.
  • "All right. I'll tell you while you're undressing."
  • "I don't want to listen."
  • "A week ago," said Eustace Hignett, "I will ask you to picture me seated
  • after some difficulty in a carriage in the New York Subway. I got into
  • conversation with a girl with an elephant gun."
  • Sam revised his private commination service in order to include the
  • elephant gun.
  • "She was my soul-mate," proceeded Eustace with quiet determination. "I
  • didn't know it at the time, but she was. She had grave brown eyes, a
  • wonderful personality, and this elephant gun."
  • "Did she shoot you with it?"
  • "Shoot me? What do you mean? Why, no!"
  • "The girl must have been a fool!" said Sam bitterly. "The chance of a
  • lifetime and she missed it. Where are my pyjamas?"
  • "I haven't seen your pyjamas. She talked to me about this elephant gun,
  • and explained its mechanism. She told me the correct part of a
  • hippopotamus to aim at, how to make a nourishing soup out of mangoes,
  • and what to do when bitten by a Borneo wire-snake. You can imagine how
  • she soothed my aching heart. My heart, if you recollect, was aching at
  • the moment--quite unnecessarily if I had only known--because it was only
  • a couple of days since my engagement to Wilhelmina Bennett had been
  • broken off. Well, we parted at Sixty-sixth Street, and, strange as it
  • may seem, I forgot all about her."
  • "Do it again!"
  • "Tell it again?"
  • "Good heavens, no! Forget all about her again."
  • "Nothing," said Eustace Hignett gravely, "could make me do that. Our
  • souls have blended. Our beings have called to one another from their
  • deepest depths, saying.... There are your pyjamas, over in the corner
  • ... saying 'You are mine!' How could I forget her after that? Well, as I
  • was saying, we parted. Little did I know that she was sailing on this
  • very boat! But just now she came to me as I writhed on the deck...."
  • "Did you writhe?" asked Sam with a flicker of moody interest.
  • "I certainly did!"
  • "That's good!"
  • "But not for long."
  • "That's bad!"
  • "She came to me and healed me. Sam, that girl is an angel."
  • "Switch off the light when you've finished."
  • "She seemed to understand without a word how I was feeling. There are
  • some situations which do not need words. She went away and returned with
  • a mixture of some description in a glass. I don't know what it was. It
  • had Worcester Sauce in it. She put it to my lips. She made me drink it.
  • She said it was what she always used in Africa for bull-calves with the
  • staggers. Well, believe me or believe me not ... are you asleep?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Believe me or believe me not, in under two minutes I was not merely
  • freed from the nausea caused by your cigar. I was smoking myself! I was
  • walking the deck with her without the slightest qualm. I was even able
  • to look over the side from time to time and comment on the beauty of the
  • moon on the water.... I have said some mordant things about women since
  • I came on board this boat. I withdraw them unreservedly. They still
  • apply to girls like Wilhelmina Bennett, but I have ceased to include the
  • whole sex in my remarks. Jane Hubbard has restored my faith in Woman.
  • Sam! Sam!"
  • "What?"
  • "I said that Jane Hubbard had restored my faith in Woman."
  • "Oh, all right."
  • Eustace Hignett finished undressing and got into bed. With a soft smile
  • on his face he switched off the light. There was a long silence, broken
  • only by the distant purring of the engines.
  • At about twelve-thirty a voice came from the lower berth.
  • "Sam!"
  • "What is it now?"
  • "There is a sweet womanly strength about her, Sam. She was telling me
  • she once killed a panther with a hat-pin."
  • Sam groaned and tossed on his mattress.
  • Silence fell again.
  • "At least I think it was a panther," said Eustace Hignett at a quarter
  • past one. "Either a panther or a puma."
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • SIR MALLABY OFFERS A SUGGESTION
  • § 1
  • A week after the liner "Atlantic" had docked at Southampton Sam Marlowe
  • might have been observed--and was observed by various of the
  • residents--sitting on a bench on the esplanade of that rising
  • watering-place, Bingley-on-the-Sea, in Sussex. All watering-places on
  • the south coast of England are blots on the landscape, but though I am
  • aware that by saying it I shall offend the civic pride of some of the
  • others--none are so peculiarly foul as Bingley-on-the-Sea. The asphalte
  • on the Bingley esplanade is several degrees more depressing than the
  • asphalte on other esplanades. The Swiss waiters at the Hotel
  • Magnificent, where Sam was stopping, are in a class of bungling
  • incompetence by themselves, the envy and despair of all the other Swiss
  • waiters at all the other Hotels Magnificent along the coast. For
  • dreariness of aspect Bingley-on-the-Sea stands alone. The very waves
  • that break on its shingle seem to creep up the beach reluctantly, as if
  • it revolted them to have to come to such a place.
  • Why, then, was Sam Marlowe visiting this ozone-swept Gehenna? Why, with
  • all the rest of England at his disposal, had he chosen to spend a week
  • at breezy, blighted Bingley?
  • Simply because he had been disappointed in love.
  • Nothing is more curious than the myriad ways in which reaction from an
  • unfortunate love-affair manifests itself in various men. No two males
  • behave in the same way under the spur of female fickleness.
  • _Archilochum_, for instance, according to the Roman writer, _proprio
  • rabies armavit iambo_. It is no good pretending out of politeness that
  • you know what that means, so I will translate. _Rabies_--his
  • grouch--_armavit_--armed--_Archilochum_--Archilochus--_iambo_--with the
  • iambic--_proprio_--his own invention. In other words, when the poet
  • Archilochus was handed his hat by the lady of his affections, he
  • consoled himself by going off and writing satirical verse about her in a
  • new metre which he had thought up immediately after leaving the house.
  • That was the way the thing affected him.
  • On the other hand, we read in a recent issue of a London daily paper
  • that John Simmons (31), a meat-salesman, was accused of assaulting an
  • officer while in the discharge of his duty, at the same time using
  • profane language whereby the officer went in fear of his life. Constable
  • Riggs deposed that on the evening of the eleventh instant while he was
  • on his beat, prisoner accosted him and, after offering to fight him for
  • fourpence, drew off his right boot and threw it at his head. Accused,
  • questioned by the magistrate, admitted the charge and expressed regret,
  • pleading that he had had words with his young woman, and it had upset
  • him.
  • Neither of these courses appealed to Samuel Marlowe. He had sought
  • relief by slinking off alone to the Hotel Magnificent at
  • Bingley-on-the-Sea. It was the same spirit which has often moved other
  • men in similar circumstances to go off to the Rockies to shoot
  • grizzlies.
  • To a certain extent the Hotel Magnificent had dulled the pain. At any
  • rate, the service and cooking there had done much to take his mind off
  • it. His heart still ached, but he felt equal to going to London and
  • seeing his father, which of course he ought to have done seven days
  • before.
  • He rose from his bench--he had sat down on it directly after
  • breakfast--and went back to the hotel to inquire about trains. An hour
  • later he had begun his journey and two hours after that he was at the
  • door of his father's office.
  • The offices of the old-established firm of Marlowe, Thorpe, Prescott,
  • Winslow and Appleby are in Ridgeway's Inn, not far from Fleet Street.
  • The brass plate, let into the woodwork of the door, is misleading.
  • Reading it, you get the impression that on the other side quite a covey
  • of lawyers await your arrival. The name of the firm leads you to suppose
  • that there will be barely standing-room in the office. You picture
  • Thorpe jostling you aside as he makes for Prescott to discuss with him
  • the latest case of demurrer, and Winslow and Appleby treading on your
  • toes, deep in conversation on replevin. But these legal firms dwindle.
  • The years go by and take their toll, snatching away here a Prescott,
  • there an Appleby, till, before you know where you are, you are down to
  • your last lawyer. The only surviving member of the firm of Marlowe,
  • Thorpe--what I said before--was, at the time with which this story
  • deals, Sir Mallaby Marlowe, son of the original founder of the firm and
  • father of the celebrated black-face comedian, Samuel of that ilk; and
  • the outer office, where callers were received and parked till Sir
  • Mallaby could find time for them, was occupied by a single clerk.
  • When Sam opened the door this clerk, John Peters by name, was seated on
  • a high stool, holding in one hand a half-eaten sausage, in the other an
  • extraordinarily large and powerful-looking revolver. At the sight of Sam
  • he laid down both engines of destruction and beamed. He was not a
  • particularly successful beamer, being hampered by a cast in one eye
  • which gave him a truculent and sinister look; but those who knew him
  • knew that he had a heart of gold and were not intimidated by his
  • repellent face. Between Sam and himself there had always existed terms
  • of great cordiality, starting from the time when the former was a small
  • boy and it had been John Peters' mission to take him now to the Zoo, now
  • to the train back to school.
  • "Why, Mr. Samuel!"
  • "Hullo, Peters!"
  • "We were expecting you back a week ago."
  • "Oh, I had something to see to before I came to town," said Sam
  • carelessly.
  • "So you got back safe!" said John Peters.
  • "Safe! Why, of course."
  • Peters shook his head.
  • "I confess that, when there was this delay in your coming here, I
  • sometimes feared something might have happened to you. I recall
  • mentioning it to the young lady who recently did me the honour to
  • promise to become my wife."
  • "Ocean liners aren't often wrecked nowadays."
  • "I was thinking more of the brawls on shore. America's a dangerous
  • country. But perhaps you were not in touch with the underworld?"
  • "I don't think I was."
  • "Ah!" said John Peters significantly.
  • He took up the revolver, gave it a fond and almost paternal look, and
  • replaced it on the desk.
  • "What on earth are you doing with that thing?" asked Sam.
  • Mr. Peters lowered his voice.
  • "I'm going to America myself in a few days' time, Mr. Samuel. It's my
  • annual holiday, and the guv'nor's sending me over with papers in
  • connection with The People _v._ Schultz and Bowen. It's a big case over
  • there. A client of ours is mixed up in it, an American gentleman. I am
  • to take these important papers to his legal representative in New York.
  • So I thought it best to be prepared."
  • The first smile that he had permitted himself for nearly two weeks
  • flitted across Sam's face.
  • "What on earth sort of place do you think New York is?" he asked. "It's
  • safer than London."
  • "Ah, but what about the Underworld? I've seen these American films that
  • they send over here, Mr. Samuel. Did you ever see 'Wolves of the
  • Bowery?' There was a man in that in just my position, carrying important
  • papers, and what they didn't try to do to him! No, I'm taking no
  • chances, Mr. Samuel!"
  • "I should have said you were, lugging that thing about with you."
  • Mr. Peters seemed wounded.
  • "Oh, I understand the mechanism perfectly, and I am becoming a very fair
  • shot. I take my little bite of food in here early and go and practise at
  • the Rupert Street Rifle Range during my lunch hour. You'd be surprised
  • how quickly one picks it up. When I get home of a night I try how
  • quickly I can draw. You have to draw like a flash of lightning, Mr.
  • Samuel. If you'd ever seen a film called 'Two-Gun-Thomas,' you'd realise
  • that. You haven't time to wait loitering about."
  • Mr. Peters picked up a speaking-tube and blew down it.
  • "Mr. Samuel to see you, Sir Mallaby. Yes, sir, very good. Will you go
  • right in, Mr. Samuel?"
  • Sam proceeded to the inner office, and found his father dictating into
  • the attentive ear of Miss Milliken, his elderly and respectable
  • stenographer, replies to his morning mail.
  • Sir Mallaby Marlowe was a dapper little man, with a round, cheerful face
  • and a bright eye. His morning coat had been cut by London's best tailor,
  • and his trousers perfectly creased by a sedulous valet. A pink carnation
  • in his buttonhole matched his healthy complexion. His golf handicap was
  • twelve. His sister, Mrs. Horace Hignett, considered him worldly.
  • "DEAR SIRS,--We are in receipt of your favour and in reply beg to state
  • that nothing will induce us ... will induce us ... where did I put that
  • letter? Ah!... nothing will induce us ... oh, tell 'em to go to blazes,
  • Miss Milliken."
  • "Very well, Sir Mallaby."
  • "That's that. Ready? Messrs. Brigney, Goole and Butterworth. What
  • infernal names these people have. SIRS,--On behalf of our client ... oh,
  • hullo, Sam!"
  • "Good morning, father."
  • "Take a seat. I'm busy, but I'll be finished in a moment. Where was I,
  • Miss Milliken?"
  • "'On behalf of our client....'"
  • "Oh, yes. On behalf of our client Mr. Wibblesley Eggshaw.... Where
  • these people get their names I'm hanged if I know. Your poor mother
  • wanted to call you Hyacinth, Sam. You may not know it, but in the
  • 'nineties when you were born, children were frequently christened
  • Hyacinth. Well, I saved you from that."
  • His attention now diverted to his son, Sir Mallaby seemed to remember
  • that the latter had just returned from a long journey and that he had
  • not seen him for many weeks. He inspected him with interest.
  • "Very glad you're back, Sam. So you didn't win?"
  • "No, I got beaten in the semi-finals."
  • "American amateurs are a very hot lot, the best ones. I suppose you were
  • weak on the greens. I warned you about that. You'll have to rub up your
  • putting before next year."
  • At the idea that any such mundane pursuit as practising putting could
  • appeal to his broken spirit now, Sam uttered a bitter laugh. It was as
  • if Dante had recommended some lost soul in the Inferno to occupy his
  • mind by knitting jumpers.
  • "Well, you seem to be in great spirits," said Sir Mallaby approvingly.
  • "It's pleasant to hear your merry laugh again. Isn't it, Miss Milliken?"
  • "Extremely exhilarating," agreed the stenographer, adjusting her
  • spectacles and smiling at Sam, for whom there was a soft spot in her
  • heart.
  • A sense of the futility of life oppressed Sam. As he gazed in the glass
  • that morning, he had thought, not without a certain gloomy satisfaction,
  • how remarkably pale and drawn his face looked. And these people seemed
  • to imagine that he was in the highest spirits. His laughter, which had
  • sounded to him like the wailing of a demon, struck Miss Milliken as
  • exhilarating.
  • "On behalf of our client, Mr. Wibblesley Eggshaw," said Sir Mallaby,
  • swooping back to duty once more, "we beg to state that we are prepared
  • to accept service ... what time did you dock this morning?"
  • "I landed nearly a week ago."
  • "A week ago! Then what the deuce have you been doing with yourself? Why
  • haven't I seen you?"
  • "I've been down at Bingley-on-the-Sea."
  • "Bingley! What on earth were you doing at that God-forsaken place?"
  • "Wrestling with myself," said Sam with simple dignity.
  • Sir Mallaby's agile mind had leaped back to the letter which he was
  • answering.
  • "We should be glad to meet you.... Wrestling, eh? Well, I like a boy to
  • be fond of manly sports. Still, life isn't all athletics. Don't forget
  • that. Life is real! Life is ... how does it go, Miss Milliken?"
  • Miss Milliken folded her hands and shut her eyes, her invariable habit
  • when called upon to recite.
  • "Life is real! Life is earnest! And the grave is not its goal; dust
  • thou art to dust returnest, was not spoken of the soul. Art is long and
  • time is fleeting, And our hearts, though stout and brave, Still like
  • muffled drums are beating, Funeral marches to the grave. Lives of great
  • men all remind us we can make our lives sublime, and, departing, leave
  • behind us footsteps on the sands of Time. Let us then ..." said Miss
  • Milliken respectfully, ... "be up and doing...."
  • "All right, all right, all right!" said Sir Mallaby. "I don't want it
  • all. Life is real! Life is earnest, Sam. I want to speak to you about
  • that when I've finished answering these letters. Where was I? 'We should
  • be glad to meet you at any time, if you will make an appointment....'
  • Bingley-on-the-Sea! Good heavens! Why Bingley-on-the-Sea? Why not
  • Margate while you were about it?"
  • "Margate is too bracing. I did not wish to be braced. Bingley suited my
  • mood. It was grey and dark and it rained all the time, and the sea slunk
  • about in the distance like some baffled beast...."
  • He stopped, becoming aware that his father was not listening. Sir
  • Mallaby's attention had returned to the letter.
  • "Oh, what's the good of answering the dashed thing at all?" said Sir
  • Mallaby. "Brigney, Goole and Butterworth know perfectly well that
  • they've got us in a cleft stick. Butterworth knows it better than Goole,
  • and Brigney knows it better than Butterworth. This young fool, Eggshaw,
  • Sam, admits that he wrote the girl twenty-three letters, twelve of them
  • in verse, and twenty-one specifically asking her to marry him, and he
  • comes to me and expects me to get him out of it. The girl is suing him
  • for ten thousand."
  • "How like a woman!"
  • Miss Milliken bridled reproachfully at this slur on her sex. Sir Mallaby
  • took no notice of it whatever.
  • "... if you will make an appointment, when we can discuss the matter
  • without prejudice. Get those typed, Miss Milliken. Have a cigar, Sam.
  • Miss Milliken, tell Peters as you go out that I am occupied with a
  • conference and can see nobody for half an hour."
  • When Miss Milliken had withdrawn Sir Mallaby occupied ten seconds of the
  • period which he had set aside for communion with his son in staring
  • silently at him.
  • "I'm glad you're back, Sam," he said at length. "I want to have a talk
  • with you. You know, it's time you were settling down. I've been thinking
  • about you while you were in America and I've come to the conclusion that
  • I've been letting you drift along. Very bad for a young man. You're
  • getting on. I don't say you're senile, but you're not twenty-one any
  • longer, and at your age I was working like a beaver. You've got to
  • remember that life is--dash it! I've forgotten it again." He broke off
  • and puffed vigorously into the speaking tube. "Miss Milliken, kindly
  • repeat what you were saying just now about life.... Yes, yes, that's
  • enough!" He put down the instrument. "Yes, life is real, life is
  • earnest," he said, gazing at Sam seriously, "and the grave is not our
  • goal. Lives of great men all remind us we can make our lives sublime. In
  • fact, it's time you took your coat off and started work."
  • "I am quite ready, father."
  • "You didn't hear what I said," exclaimed Sir Mallaby, with a look of
  • surprise. "I said it was time you began work."
  • "And I said I was quite ready."
  • "Bless my soul! You've changed your views a trifle since I saw you
  • last."
  • "I have changed them altogether."
  • Long hours of brooding among the red plush settees in the lounge of the
  • Hotel Magnificent at Bingley-on-the-Sea had brought about this strange,
  • even morbid, attitude of mind in Samuel Marlowe. Work, he had decided,
  • was the only medicine for his sick soul. Here, he felt, in this quiet
  • office, far from the tumult and noise of the world, in a haven of torts
  • and misdemeanours and Vic. I. cap. 3's, and all the rest of it, he might
  • find peace. At any rate, it was worth taking a stab at it.
  • "Your trip has done you good," said Sir Mallaby approvingly. "The sea
  • air has given you some sense. I'm glad of it. It makes it easier for me
  • to say something else that I've had on my mind for a good while. Sam,
  • it's time you got married."
  • Sam barked bitterly. His father looked at him with concern.
  • "Swallow some smoke the wrong way?"
  • "I was laughing," explained Sam with dignity.
  • Sir Mallaby shook his head.
  • "I don't want to discourage your high spirits, but I must ask you to
  • approach this matter seriously. Marriage would do you a world of good,
  • Sam. It would brace you up. You really ought to consider the idea. I was
  • two years younger than you are when I married your poor mother, and it
  • was the making of me. A wife might make something of you."
  • "Impossible!"
  • "I don't see why she shouldn't. There's lots of good in you, my boy,
  • though you may not think so."
  • "When I said it was impossible," said Sam coldly, "I was referring to
  • the impossibility of the possibility.... I mean, that it was impossible
  • that I could possibly ... in other words, father, I can never marry. My
  • heart is dead."
  • "Your what?"
  • "My heart."
  • "Don't be a fool. There's nothing wrong with your heart. All our family
  • have had hearts like steam-engines. Probably you have been feeling a
  • sort of burning. Knock off cigars and that will soon stop."
  • "You don't understand me. I mean that a woman has treated me in a way
  • that has finished her whole sex as far as I am concerned. For me, women
  • do not exist."
  • "You didn't tell me about this," said Sir Mallaby, interested. "When
  • did this happen? Did she jilt you?"
  • "Yes."
  • "In America, was it?"
  • "On the boat."
  • Sir Mallaby chuckled heartily.
  • "My dear boy, you don't mean to tell me that you're taking a shipboard
  • flirtation seriously? Why, you're expected to fall in love with a
  • different girl every time you go on a voyage. You'll get over this in a
  • week. You'd have got over it by now if you hadn't gone and buried
  • yourself in a depressing place like Bingley-on-the-Sea."
  • The whistle of the speaking-tube blew. Sir Mallaby put the instrument to
  • his ear.
  • "All right," he turned to Sam. "I shall have to send you away now, Sam.
  • Man waiting to see me. Good-bye. By the way, are you doing anything
  • to-night?"
  • "No."
  • "Not got a wrestling match on with yourself, or anything like that?
  • Well, come to dinner at the house. Seven-thirty. Don't be late."
  • Sam went out. As he passed through the outer office, Miss Milliken
  • intercepted him.
  • "Oh, Mr. Sam!"
  • "Yes?"
  • "Excuse me, but will you be seeing Sir Mallaby again to-day?"
  • "I'm dining with him to-night."
  • "Then would you--I don't like to disturb him now, when he is
  • busy--would you mind telling him that I inadvertently omitted a stanza?
  • It runs," said Miss Milliken, closing her eyes, "'Trust no future,
  • howe'er pleasant! Let the dead past bury its dead! Act, act, in the
  • living present, Heart within and God o'erhead!' Thank you so much. Good
  • afternoon."
  • § 2
  • Sam, reaching Bruton Street at a quarter past seven, was informed by the
  • butler who admitted him that his father was dressing and would be down
  • in a few minutes. The butler, an old retainer of the Marlowe family,
  • who, if he had not actually dandled Sam on his knees when an infant, had
  • known him as a small boy, was delighted to see him again.
  • "Missed you very much, Mr. Samuel, we all have," he said affectionately,
  • as he preceded him to the drawing-room.
  • "Yes?" said Sam absently.
  • "Very much indeed, sir. I happened to remark only the other day that the
  • place didn't seem the same without your happy laugh. It's good to see
  • you back once more, looking so well and merry."
  • Sam stalked into the drawing-room with the feeling that comes to all of
  • us from time to time, that it is hopeless to struggle. The whole damned
  • circle of his acquaintance seemed to have made up their minds that he
  • had not a care in the world, so what was the use? He lowered himself
  • into a deep arm-chair and lit a cigarette.
  • Presently the butler reappeared with a cocktail on a tray. Sam drained
  • it, and scarcely had the door closed behind the old retainer when an
  • abrupt change came over the whole outlook. It was as if he had been a
  • pianola and somebody had inserted a new record. Looking well and happy!
  • He blew a smoke ring. Well, if it came to that, why not? Why shouldn't
  • he look well and happy? What had he got to worry about? He was a young
  • man, fit and strong, in the springtide of life, just about to plunge
  • into an absorbing business. Why should he brood over a sentimental
  • episode which had ended a little unfortunately? He would never see the
  • girl again. If anything in this world was certain, that was. She would
  • go her way, and he his. Samuel Marlowe rose from his chair a new man, to
  • greet his father, who came in at that moment fingering a snowy white
  • tie.
  • Sam started at his parent's splendour in some consternation.
  • "Great Scot, father! Are you expecting a lot of people? I thought we
  • were dining alone."
  • "That's all right, my boy. A dinner-jacket is perfectly in order. We
  • shall be quite a small party. Six in all. You and I, a friend of mine
  • and his daughter, a friend of my friend's friend and my friend's
  • friend's son."
  • "Surely that's more than six!"
  • "No."
  • "It sounded more."
  • "Six," said Sir Mallaby firmly. He raised a shapely hand with the
  • fingers outspread. "Count 'em for yourself." He twiddled his thumb.
  • "Number one--Bennett."
  • "Who?" cried Sam.
  • "Bennett. Rufus Bennett. He's an American over here for the summer.
  • Haven't I ever mentioned his name to you? He's a great fellow. Always
  • thinking he's at death's door, but keeps up a fine appetite. I've been
  • his legal representative in London for years. Then--" Sir Mallaby
  • twiddled his first finger--"there's his daughter Wilhelmina, who has
  • just arrived in England." A look of enthusiasm came into Sir Mallaby's
  • face. "Sam, my boy, I don't intend to say a word about Miss Wilhelmina
  • Bennett, because I think there's nothing more prejudicial than singing a
  • person's praises in advance. I merely remark that I fancy you will
  • appreciate her! I've only met her once, and then only for a few minutes,
  • but what I say is, if there's a girl living who's likely to make you
  • forget whatever fool of a woman you may be fancying yourself in love
  • with at the moment, that girl is Wilhelmina Bennett! The others are
  • Bennett's friend, Henry Mortimer, also an American--a big lawyer, I
  • believe, on the other side--and his son Bream. I haven't met either of
  • them. They ought to be here any moment now." He looked at his watch.
  • "Ah! I think that was the front door. Yes, I can hear them on the
  • stairs."
  • CHAPTER IX
  • ROUGH WORK AT A DINNER TABLE
  • § 1
  • After the first shock of astonishment, Sam Marlowe had listened to his
  • father's harangue with a growing indignation which, towards the end of
  • the speech, had assumed proportions of a cold fury. If there is one
  • thing the which your high-spirited young man resents, it is being the
  • toy of Fate. He chafes at the idea that Fate had got it all mapped out
  • for him. Fate, thought Sam, had constructed a cheap, mushy, sentimental,
  • five-reel film scenario, and without consulting him had had the cool
  • cheek to cast him for one of the puppets. He seemed to see Fate as a
  • thin female with a soppy expression and pince-nez, sniffing a little as
  • she worked the thing out. He could picture her glutinous satisfaction as
  • she re-read her scenario and gloated over its sure-fire qualities. There
  • was not a flaw in the construction. It started off splendidly with a
  • romantic meeting, had 'em guessing half-way through when the hero and
  • heroine quarrelled and parted--apparently for ever, and now the stage
  • was all set for the reconciliation and the slow fade-out on the embrace.
  • To bring this last scene about, Fate had had to permit herself a slight
  • coincidence, but she did not jib at that. What we call coincidences are
  • merely the occasions when Fate gets stuck in a plot and has to invent
  • the next situation in a hurry.
  • Sam Marlowe felt sulky and defiant. This girl had treated him shamefully
  • and he wanted to have nothing more to do with her. If he had had his
  • wish, he would never have met her again. Fate, in her interfering way,
  • had forced this meeting on him and was now complacently looking to him
  • to behave in a suitable manner. Well, he would show her! In a few
  • seconds now, Billie and he would be meeting. He would be distant and
  • polite. He would be cold and aloof. He would chill her to the bone, and
  • rip a hole in the scenario six feet wide.
  • The door opened, and the room became full of Bennetts and Mortimers.
  • § 2
  • Billie, looking, as Marlowe could not but admit, particularly pretty,
  • headed the procession. Following her came a large red-faced man whose
  • buttons seemed to creak beneath the strain of their duties. After him
  • trotted a small, thin, pale, semi-bald individual who wore glasses and
  • carried his nose raised and puckered as though some faintly unpleasant
  • smell were troubling his nostrils. The fourth member of the party was
  • dear old Bream.
  • There was a confused noise of mutual greetings and introductions, and
  • then Bream got a good sight of Sam and napped forward with his right
  • wing outstretched.
  • "Why, hello!" said Bream.
  • "How are you, Mortimer?" said Sam coldly.
  • "What, do you know my son?" exclaimed Sir Mallaby.
  • "Came over in the boat together," said Bream.
  • "Capital!" said Sir Mallaby. "Old friends, eh? Miss Bennett," he turned
  • to Billie, who had been staring wide-eyed at her late fiancé, "let me
  • present my son, Sam. Sam, this is Miss Bennett."
  • "How do you do?" said Sam.
  • "How do you do?" said Billie.
  • "Bennett, you've never met my son, I think?"
  • Mr. Bennett peered at Sam with protruding eyes which gave him the
  • appearance of a rather unusually stout prawn.
  • "How _are_ you?" he asked, with such intensity that Sam unconsciously
  • found himself replying to a question which does not as a rule call for
  • any answer.
  • "Very well, thanks."
  • Mr. Bennett shook his head moodily. "You are lucky to be able to say so!
  • Very few of us can assert as much. I can truthfully say that in the last
  • fifteen years I have not known what it is to enjoy sound health for a
  • single day. Marlowe," he proceeded, swinging ponderously round on Sir
  • Mallaby like a liner turning in the river, "I assure you that at
  • twenty-five minutes past four this afternoon I was very nearly convinced
  • that I should have to call you up on the 'phone and cancel this dinner
  • engagement. When I took my temperature at twenty minutes to six...." At
  • this point the butler appeared at the door announcing that dinner was
  • served.
  • Sir Mallaby Marlowe's dinner table, which, like most of the furniture in
  • the house had belonged to his deceased father and had been built at a
  • period when people liked things big and solid, was a good deal too
  • spacious to be really ideal for a small party. A white sea of linen
  • separated each diner from the diner opposite and created a forced
  • intimacy with the person seated next to him. Billie Bennett and Sam
  • Marlowe, as a consequence, found themselves, if not exactly in a
  • solitude of their own, at least sufficiently cut off from their kind to
  • make silence between them impossible. Westward, Mr. Mortimer had engaged
  • Sir Mallaby in a discussion on the recent case of Ouseley _v._ Ouseley,
  • Figg, Mountjoy, Moseby-Smith and others, which though too complicated to
  • explain here, presented points of considerable interest to the legal
  • mind. To the east, Mr. Bennett was relating to Bream the more striking
  • of his recent symptoms. Billie felt constrained to make at least an
  • attempt at conversation.
  • "How strange meeting you here," she said.
  • Sam, who had been crumbling bread in an easy and debonair manner, looked
  • up and met her eye. Its expression was one of cheerful friendliness. He
  • could not see his own eye, but he imagined and hoped that it was cold
  • and forbidding, like the surface of some bottomless mountain tarn.
  • "I beg your pardon?"
  • "I said, how strange meeting you here. I never dreamed Sir Mallaby was
  • your father."
  • "I knew it all along," said Sam, and there was an interval caused by the
  • maid insinuating herself between them and collecting his soup plate. He
  • sipped sherry and felt a sombre self-satisfaction. He had, he
  • considered, given the conversation the right tone from the start. Cool
  • and distant. Out of the corner of his eye he saw Billie bite her lip. He
  • turned to her again. Now that he had definitely established the fact
  • that he and she were strangers, meeting by chance at a dinner-party, he
  • was in a position to go on talking.
  • "And how do you like England, Miss Bennett?"
  • Billie's eye had lost its cheerful friendliness. A somewhat feline
  • expression had taken its place.
  • "Pretty well," she replied.
  • "You don't like it?"
  • "Well, the way I look at it is this. It's no use grumbling. One has got
  • to realise that in England one is in a savage country, and one should
  • simply be thankful one isn't eaten by the natives."
  • "What makes you call England a savage country?" demanded Sam, a staunch
  • patriot, deeply stung.
  • "What would you call a country where you can't get ice, central heating,
  • corn-on-the-cob, or bathrooms? My father and Mr. Mortimer have just
  • taken a house down on the coast and there's just one niggly little
  • bathroom in the place."
  • "Is that your only reason for condemning England?"
  • "Oh no, it has other drawbacks."
  • "Such as?"
  • "Well, Englishmen, for instance. Young Englishmen in particular. English
  • young men are awful! Idle, rude, conceited, and ridiculous."
  • Marlowe refused hock with a bitter intensity which nearly startled the
  • old retainer, who had just offered it to him, into dropping the
  • decanter.
  • "How many English young men have you met?"
  • Billie met his eye squarely and steadily. "Well, now that I come to
  • think of it, not many. In fact, very few. As a matter of fact, only...."
  • "Only?"
  • "Well, very few," said Billie. "Yes," she said meditatively, "I suppose
  • I really have been rather unjust. I should not have condemned a class
  • simply because ... I mean, I suppose there _are_ young Englishmen who
  • are not rude and ridiculous?"
  • "I suppose there are American girls who have hearts."
  • "Oh, plenty."
  • "I'll believe that when I meet one."
  • Sam paused. Cold aloofness was all very well, but this conversation was
  • developing into a vulgar brawl. The ghosts of dead and gone Marlowes,
  • all noted for their courtesy to the sex, seemed to stand beside his
  • chair, eyeing him reprovingly. His work, they seemed to whisper, was
  • becoming raw. It was time to jerk the interchange of thought back into
  • the realm of distant civility.
  • "Are you making a long stay in London, Miss Bennett?"
  • "No, not long. We are going down to the country almost immediately. I
  • told you my father and Mr. Mortimer had taken a house there."
  • "You will enjoy that."
  • "I'm sure I shall. Mr. Mortimer's son Bream will be there. That will be
  • nice."
  • "Why?" said Sam, backsliding.
  • There was a pause.
  • "_He_ isn't rude and ridiculous, eh?" said Sam gruffly.
  • "Oh, no. His manners are perfect, and he has such a natural dignity,"
  • she went on, looking affectionately across the table at the heir of the
  • Mortimers, who, finding Mr. Bennett's medical confidences a trifle
  • fatiguing, was yawning broadly, and absently balancing his wine glass on
  • a fork.
  • "Besides," said Billie in a soft and dreamy voice, "we are engaged to be
  • married!"
  • § 3
  • Sam didn't care, of course. We, who have had the privilege of a glimpse
  • into his iron soul, know that. He was not in the least upset by the
  • news--just surprised. He happened to be raising his glass at the moment,
  • and he registered a certain amount of restrained emotion by snapping the
  • stem in half and shooting the contents over the tablecloth: but that was
  • all.
  • "Good heavens, Sam!" ejaculated Sir Mallaby, aghast. His wine glasses
  • were an old and valued set.
  • Sam blushed as red as the stain on the cloth.
  • "Awfully sorry, father! Don't know how it happened."
  • "Something must have given you a shock," suggested Billie kindly.
  • The old retainer rallied round with napkins, and Sir Mallaby, who was
  • just about to dismiss the affair with the polished ease of a good host,
  • suddenly became aware of the activities of Bream. That young man, on
  • whose dreamy calm the accident had made no impression whatever, had
  • successfully established the equilibrium of the glass and the fork, and
  • was now cautiously inserting beneath the latter a section of a roll, the
  • whole forming a charming picture in still life.
  • "If that glass is in your way...." said Sir Mallaby as soon as he had
  • hitched up his drooping jaw sufficiently to enable him to speak. He was
  • beginning to feel that he would be lucky if he came out of this
  • dinner-party with a mere remnant of his precious set.
  • "Oh, Sir Mallaby," said Billie, casting an adoring glance at the
  • juggler, "you needn't be afraid that Bream will drop it. _He_ isn't
  • clumsy! He is wonderful at that sort of thing, simply wonderful! I think
  • it's so splendid," said Billie, "when men can do things like that. I'm
  • always trying to get Bream to do some of his tricks for people, but he's
  • so modest, he won't."
  • "Refreshingly different," Sir Mallaby considered, "from the average
  • drawing-room entertainer."
  • "Yes," said Billie emphatically. "I think the most terrible thing in the
  • world is a man who tries to entertain when he can't. Did I tell you
  • about the man on board ship, father, at the ship's concert? Oh, it was
  • the most awful thing you ever saw. Everybody was talking about it!" She
  • beamed round the table, and there was a note of fresh girlish gaiety in
  • her voice. "This man got up to do an imitation of somebody--nobody knows
  • to this day who it was meant to be--and he came into the saloon and
  • directly he saw the audience he got stage fright. He just stood there
  • gurgling and not saying a word, and then suddenly his nerve failed him
  • altogether and he turned and tore out of the room like a rabbit. He
  • absolutely ran! And he hadn't said a word! It was the most ridiculous
  • exhibition I've ever seen!"
  • The anecdote went well. Of course there will always be a small minority
  • in any audience which does not appreciate a funny story, and there was
  • one in the present case. But the bulk of the company roared with
  • laughter.
  • "Do you mean," cried Sir Mallaby, choking, "the poor idiot just stood
  • there dumb?"
  • "Well, he made a sort of yammering noise," said Billie, "but that only
  • made him look sillier."
  • "Deuced good!" chuckled Sir Mallaby.
  • "Funniest thing I ever heard in my life!" gurgled Mr. Bennett,
  • swallowing a digestive capsule.
  • "May have been half-witted," suggested Mr. Mortimer.
  • Sam leaned across the table with a stern set face. He meant to change
  • the conversation if he had to do it with a crowbar.
  • "I hear you have taken a house in the country, Mr. Mortimer," he said.
  • "Yes," said Mr. Mortimer. He turned to Sir Mallaby. "We have at last
  • succeeded in persuading your sister, Mrs. Hignett, to let us rent her
  • house for the summer."
  • Sir Mallaby gasped.
  • "Windles! You don't mean to tell me that my sister has let you have
  • Windles!"
  • Mr. Mortimer nodded triumphantly.
  • "Yes. I had completely resigned myself to the prospect of spending the
  • summer in some other house, when yesterday I happened to run into your
  • nephew, young Eustace Hignett, on the street, and he said he was just
  • coming round to see me about that very thing. To cut a long story short,
  • he said that it would be all right and that we could have the house."
  • Mr. Mortimer took a sip of burgundy. "He's a curious boy, young
  • Hignett. Very nervous in his manner."
  • "Chronic dyspepsia," said Mr. Bennett authoritatively, "I can tell it at
  • a glance."
  • "Is Windles a very lovely place, Sir Mallaby?" asked Billie.
  • "Charming. Quite charming. Not large, of course, as country houses go.
  • Not a castle, I mean, with hundreds of acres of park land. But nice and
  • compact and comfortable and very picturesque."
  • "We do not require a large place," said Mr. Mortimer. "We shall be quite
  • a small party. Bennett and myself, Wilhelmina, Bream...."
  • "Don't forget," said Billie, "that you have promised to invite Jane
  • Hubbard down there."
  • "Ah, yes. Wilhelmina's friend, Miss Hubbard. She is coming. That will be
  • all, except young Hignett himself."
  • "Hignett!" cried Mr. Bennett.
  • "Mr. Hignett!" exclaimed Billie.
  • There was an almost imperceptible pause before Mr. Mortimer spoke again,
  • and for an instant the demon of embarrassment hovered, unseen but
  • present, above the dinner table. Mr. Bennett looked sternly at Billie;
  • Billie turned a shade pinker and gazed at the tablecloth; Bream started
  • nervously. Even Mr. Mortimer seemed robbed for a moment of his legal
  • calm.
  • "I forgot to tell you that," he said. "Yes, one of the stipulations--to
  • which I personally was perfectly willing to agree--was that Eustace
  • Hignett was to remain on the premises during our tenancy. Such a clause
  • in the agreement was, I am quite aware, unusual, and, had the
  • circumstances been other than they were, I would have had a good deal to
  • say about it. But we wanted the place, and we couldn't get it except by
  • agreeing, so I agreed. I'm sure you will think that I acted rightly,
  • Bennett, considering the peculiar circumstances."
  • "Well," said Mr. Bennett reluctantly, "I certainly did want that
  • house...."
  • "And we couldn't have had it otherwise," said Mr. Mortimer, "so that is
  • all there is to it."
  • "Well, it need make no difference to you," said Sir Mallaby. "I am sure
  • you will find my nephew Eustace most unobtrusive. He may even be an
  • entertaining companion. I believe he has a nice singing voice. With that
  • and the juggling of our friend here and my sister's late husband's
  • orchestrion, you will have no difficulty in amusing yourselves during
  • the evenings. You remember the orchestrion, Sam?" said Sir Mallaby, on
  • whom his son's silence had been weighing rather heavily for some time.
  • "Yes," said Sam, and returned to the silence once more.
  • "The late Mr. Hignett had it put in. He was very fond of music. It's a
  • thing you turn on by pressing a button in the wall," continued Sir
  • Mallaby. "How you stop it, I don't know. When I was down there last it
  • never seemed to stop. You mustn't miss the orchestrion!"
  • "I certainly shall," said Mr. Bennett decidedly. "Music of that
  • description happens to be the one thing which jars unendurably on my
  • nerves. My nervous system is thoroughly out of tune."
  • "So is the orchestrion," said Sir Mallaby. "I remember once when I was
  • down there...."
  • "I hope you will come down there again, Sir Mallaby," said Mr. Mortimer,
  • "during our occupancy of the house. And you, too," he said, addressing
  • Sam.
  • "I am afraid," said Sam frigidly, "that my time will be very much
  • occupied for the next few months. Thank you very much," he added, after
  • a moment's pause.
  • "Sam's going to work," said Sir Mallaby.
  • "Yes," said Sam with dark determination. "Work is the only thing in life
  • that matters!"
  • "Oh, come, Sam!" said Sir Mallaby. "At your age I used to think love was
  • fairly important, too!"
  • "Love!" said Sam. He jabbed at his soufflé with a spoon. You could see
  • by the scornful way he did it that he did not think much of love.
  • § 4
  • Sir Mallaby, the last cigar of the night between his lips, broke a
  • silence which had lasted a quarter of an hour. The guests had gone, and
  • he and Sam were alone together.
  • "Sam," he said, "do you know what I think?"
  • "No," said Sam.
  • Sir Mallaby removed his cigar and spoke impressively. "I've been
  • turning the whole thing over in my mind, and the conclusion I have come
  • to is that there is more in this Windles business than meets the eye.
  • I've known your Aunt Adeline all my life, and I tell you it isn't in
  • that woman to change her infernal pig-headed mind, especially about
  • letting her house. She is a monomaniac on that subject. If you want to
  • know my opinion, I am quite certain that your cousin Eustace has let the
  • place to these people without her knowledge, and intends to pocket the
  • cheque and not say a word about it. What do you think?"
  • "Eh?" said Sam absently.
  • "I said, what do you think?"
  • "What do I think about what?"
  • "About Eustace Hignett and Windles."
  • "What about them?"
  • Sir Mallaby regarded him disaprovingly. "I'm hanged if I know what's the
  • matter with you to-night, Sam. You seem to have unhitched your brain and
  • left it in the umbrella stand. You hadn't a word to say for yourself all
  • through dinner. You might have been a Trappist monk. And with that
  • delightful girl Miss Bennett, there, too. She must have thought you
  • infernally dull."
  • "I'm sorry."
  • "It's no good being sorry now. The mischief's done. She has gone away
  • thinking you an idiot. Do you realise," said Sir Mallaby warmly, "that
  • when she told that extremely funny story about the man who made such a
  • fool of himself on board the ship, you were the only person at the table
  • who was not amused? She must have thought you had no sense of humour!"
  • Sam rose. "I think I'll be going," he said. "Good night!"
  • A man can bear just so much.
  • CHAPTER X
  • TROUBLE AT WINDLES
  • § 1
  • Mr. Rufus Bennett stood at the window of the drawing-room of Windles,
  • looking out. From where he stood he could see all those natural and
  • artificial charms which had made the place so desirable to him when he
  • first beheld them. Immediately below, flower beds, bright with assorted
  • blooms, pressed against the ivied stone wall of the house. Beyond,
  • separated from these by a gravel pathway, a smooth lawn, whose green and
  • silky turf rivalled the lawns of Oxford colleges, stretched to a
  • picturesque shrubbery, not so dense as to withhold altogether from the
  • eye of the observer an occasional silvery glimpse of the lake that lay
  • behind it. To the left, through noble trees, appeared a white suggestion
  • of old stable yards; while to the right, bordering on the drive as it
  • swept round to a distant gate, nothing less than a fragment of a ruined
  • castle reared itself against a background of firs.
  • It had been this sensational fragment of Old England which had
  • definitely captured Mr. Bennett on his first visit to the place. He
  • could not have believed that the time would ever come when he could gaze
  • on it without any lightening of the spirits.
  • The explanation of his gloom was simple. In addition to looking at the
  • flower beds, the lawn, the shrubbery, the stable yard, and the castle,
  • Mr. Bennett was also looking at the fifth heavy shower that had fallen
  • since breakfast. This was the third afternoon of his tenancy. The first
  • day it had rained all the time. The second day it had rained from eight
  • till twelve-fifteen, from twelve-thirty till four, and from five till
  • eleven. And on this, the third day, there had been no intermission
  • longer than ten minutes. It was a trying Summer. Even the writers in the
  • daily papers seemed mildly surprised, and claimed that England had seen
  • finer Julys. Mr. Bennett, who had lived his life in a country of warmth
  • and sunshine, the thing affected in much the same way as the early days
  • of the Flood must have affected Noah. A first startled resentment had
  • given place to a despair too militant to be called resignation. And with
  • the despair had come a strong distaste for his fellow human beings,
  • notably and in particular his old friend Mr. Mortimer, who at this
  • moment broke impatiently in on his meditations.
  • "Come along, Bennett. It's your deal. It's no good looking at the rain.
  • Looking at it won't stop it."
  • Mr. Mortimer's nerves also had become a little frayed by the weather.
  • Mr. Bennett returned heavily to the table, where, with Mr. Mortimer as
  • partner he was playing one more interminable rubber of bridge against
  • Bream and Billie. He was sick of bridge, but there was nothing else to
  • do.
  • Mr. Bennett sat down with a grunt, and started to deal. Half-way through
  • the operation the sound of rather stertorous breathing began to proceed
  • from beneath the table. Mr. Bennett glanced agitatedly down, and curled
  • his legs round his chair.
  • "I have fourteen cards," said Mr. Mortimer. "That's the third time
  • you've mis-dealt."
  • "I don't care how many cards you've got!" said Mr. Bennett with heat.
  • "That dog of yours is sniffing at my ankles!"
  • He looked malignantly at a fine bulldog which now emerged from its cover
  • and, sitting down, beamed at the company. He was a sweet-tempered dog,
  • handicapped by the outward appearance of a canine plug-ugly. Murder
  • seemed the mildest of the desires that lay behind that rugged
  • countenance. As a matter of fact, what he wanted was cake. His name was
  • Smith, and Mr. Mortimer had bought him just before leaving London to
  • serve the establishment as a watch-dog.
  • "He won't hurt you," said Mr. Mortimer carelessly.
  • "You keep saying that!" replied Mr. Bennett pettishly. "How do you
  • know? He's a dangerous beast, and if I had had any notion that you were
  • buying him, I would have had something to say about it!"
  • "Whatever you might have said would have made no difference. I am within
  • my legal rights in purchasing a dog. You have a dog. At least,
  • Wilhelmina has."
  • "Yes, and Pinky-Boodles gets on splendidly with Smith," said Billie.
  • "I've seen them playing together."
  • Mr. Bennett subsided. He was feeling thoroughly misanthropic. He
  • disliked everybody, with perhaps the exception of Billie, for whom a
  • faint paternal fondness still lingered. He disliked Mr. Mortimer. He
  • disliked Bream, and regretted that Billie had become engaged to him,
  • though for years such an engagement had been his dearest desire. He
  • disliked Jane Hubbard, now out walking in the rain with Eustace Hignett.
  • And he disliked Eustace.
  • Eustace, he told himself, he disliked rather more than any of the
  • others. He resented the young man's presence in the house; and he
  • resented the fact that, being in the house, he should go about, pale and
  • haggard, as though he were sickening for something. Mr. Bennett had the
  • most violent objection to associating with people who looked as though
  • they were sickening for something.
  • He got up and went to the window. The rain leaped at the glass like a
  • frolicking puppy. It seemed to want to get inside and play with Mr.
  • Bennett.
  • § 2
  • Mr. Bennett slept late on the following morning. He looked at his watch
  • on the dressing table when he got up, and found that it was past ten.
  • Taking a second look to assure himself that he had really slumbered to
  • this unusual hour, he suddenly became aware of something bright and
  • yellow resting beside the watch, and paused, transfixed, like Robinson
  • Crusoe staring at the footprint in the sand. If he had not been in
  • England, he would have said that it was a patch of sunshine.
  • Mr. Bennett stared at the yellow blob with the wistful mistrust of a
  • traveller in a desert who has been taken in once or twice by mirages. It
  • was not till he had pulled up the blind and was looking out on a garden
  • full of brightness and warmth and singing birds that he definitely
  • permitted himself to accept the situation.
  • It was a superb morning. It was as if some giant had uncorked a great
  • bottle full of the distilled scent of grass, trees, flowers, and hay.
  • Mr. Bennett rang the bell joyfully, and presently there entered a grave,
  • thin, intellectual-looking man who looked like a duke, only more
  • respectable. This was Webster, Mr. Bennett's valet. He carried in one
  • hand a small mug of hot water, reverently, as if it were a present of
  • jewellery.
  • "Good morning, sir."
  • "Morning, Webster," said Mr. Bennett. "Rather late, eh?"
  • "It is" replied Webster precisely, "a little late, sir. I would have
  • awakened you at the customary hour, but it was Miss Bennett's opinion
  • that a rest would do you good."
  • Mr. Bennett's sense of well-being deepened. What more could a man want
  • in this world than fine weather and a dutiful daughter?
  • "She did, eh?"
  • "Yes, sir. She desired me to inform you that, having already
  • breakfasted, she proposed to drive Mr. Mortimer and Mr. Bream Mortimer
  • into Southampton in the car. Mr. Mortimer senior wished to buy a panama
  • hat."
  • "A panama hat!" exclaimed Mr. Bennett.
  • "A panama hat, sir."
  • Mr. Bennett's feeling of satisfaction grew still greater. It was a fine
  • day; he had a dutiful daughter; and he was going to see Henry Mortimer
  • in a panama hat. Providence was spoiling him.
  • The valet withdrew like a duke leaving the Royal Presence, not actually
  • walking backwards but giving the impression of doing so; and Mr.
  • Bennett, having decanted the mug of water into the basin, began to shave
  • himself.
  • Having finished shaving, he opened the drawer in the bureau where lay
  • his white flannel trousers. Here at last was a day worthy of them. He
  • drew them out, and as he did so, something gleamed pinkly up at him
  • from a corner of the drawer. His salmon-coloured bathing-suit.
  • Mr. Bennett started. He had not contemplated such a thing, but, after
  • all, why not? There was the lake, shining through the trees, a mere
  • fifty yards away. What could be more refreshing? He shed his pyjamas,
  • and climbed into the bathing-suit. And presently, looking like the sun
  • on a foggy day, he emerged from the house and picked his way with
  • gingerly steps across the smooth surface of the lawn.
  • At this moment, from behind a bush where he had been thriftily burying a
  • yesterday's bone, Smith the bulldog waddled out on to the lawn. He drank
  • in the exhilarating air through an upturned nose which his recent
  • excavations had rendered somewhat muddy. Then he observed Mr. Bennett,
  • and moved gladly towards him. He did not recognise Mr. Bennett, for he
  • remembered his friends principally by their respective bouquets, so he
  • cantered silently across the turf to take a sniff at him. He was
  • half-way across the lawn when some of the mud which he had inhaled when
  • burying the bone tickled his lungs and he paused to cough.
  • Mr. Bennett whirled round; and then with a sharp exclamation picked up
  • his pink feet from the velvet turf and began to run. Smith, after a
  • momentary pause of surprise, lumbered after him, wheezing contentedly.
  • This man, he felt, was evidently one of the right sort, a merry
  • playfellow.
  • Mr. Bennett continued to run; but already he had begun to pant and
  • falter, when he perceived looming upon his left the ruins of that
  • ancient castle which had so attracted him on his first visit. On that
  • occasion, it had made merely an aesthetic appeal to Mr. Bennett; now he
  • saw in a flash that its practical merits also were of a sterling order.
  • He swerved sharply, took the base of the edifice in his stride, clutched
  • at a jutting stone, flung his foot at another, and, just as his pursuer
  • arrived and sat panting below, pulled himself on to a ledge, where he
  • sat with his feet hanging well out of reach. The bulldog Smith, gazed up
  • at him expectantly. The game was a new one to Smith, but it seemed to
  • have possibilities. He was a dog who was always perfectly willing to try
  • anything once.
  • Mr. Bennett now began to address himself in earnest to the task of
  • calling for assistance. His physical discomfort was acute. Insects, some
  • winged, some without wings but--through Nature's wonderful law of
  • compensation--equipped with a number of extra pairs of legs, had begun
  • to fit out exploring expeditions over his body. They roamed about him as
  • if he were some newly opened recreation ground, strolled in couples down
  • his neck, and made up jolly family parties on his bare feet. And then,
  • first dropping like the gentle dew upon the place beneath, then swishing
  • down in a steady flood, it began to rain again.
  • It was at this point that Mr. Bennett's manly spirit broke and time
  • ceased to exist for him.
  • Aeons later, a voice spoke from below.
  • "Hullo!" said the voice.
  • Mr. Bennett looked down. The stalwart form of Jane Hubbard was standing
  • beneath him, gazing up from under a tam o'shanter cap. Smith, the
  • bulldog, gambolled about her shapely feet.
  • "Whatever are you doing up there?" said Jane. "I say, do you know if the
  • car has come back?"
  • "No. It has not."
  • "I've got to go to the doctor's. Poor little Mr. Hignett is ill. Oh,
  • well, I'll have to walk. Come along, Smith!" She turned towards the
  • drive, Smith caracoling at her side.
  • Mr. Bennett, though free now to move, remained where he was, transfixed.
  • That sinister word "ill" held him like a spell. Eustace Hignett was ill!
  • He had thought all along that the fellow was sickening for something,
  • confound him!
  • "What's the matter with him?" bellowed Mr. Bennett after Jane Hubbard's
  • retreating back.
  • "Eh?" queried Jane, stopping.
  • "What's the matter with Hignett?"
  • "I don't know."
  • "Is it infectious?"
  • "I expect so."
  • "Great Heavens!" cried Mr. Bennett, and, lowering himself cautiously to
  • the ground, squelched across the dripping grass.
  • In the hall, Webster the valet, dry and dignified, was tapping the
  • barometer with the wrist action of an ambassador knocking on the door of
  • a friendly monarch.
  • "A sharp downpour, sir," he remarked.
  • "Have you been in the house all the time?" demanded Mr. Bennett.
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Didn't you hear me shouting?"
  • "I did fancy I heard something, sir."
  • "Then why the devil didn't you come to me?"
  • "I supposed it to be the owls, sir, a bird very frequent in this
  • locality. They make a sort of harsh, hooting howl, sir. I have sometimes
  • wondered," said Webster, pursuing a not uninteresting train of thought,
  • "whether that might be the reason of the name."
  • Before Mr. Bennett could join him in the region of speculation into
  • which he had penetrated, there was a grinding of brakes on the gravel
  • outside, and the wettest motor car in England drew up at the front door.
  • § 3
  • From Windles to Southampton is a distance of about twenty miles; and the
  • rain had started to fall when the car, an open one lacking even the poor
  • protection of a cape hood, had accomplished half the homeward journey.
  • For the last ten miles Mr. Mortimer had been nursing a sullen hatred for
  • all created things; and, when entering the house, he came upon Mr.
  • Bennett hopping about in the hall, endeavouring to detain him and tell
  • him some long and uninteresting story, his venom concentrated itself
  • upon his erstwhile friend.
  • "Oh, get out of the way!" he snapped, shaking off the other's hand.
  • "Can't you see I'm wet?"
  • "Wet! Wet!" Mr. Bennett's voice quivered with self-pity. "So am I wet!"
  • "Father dear," said Billie reprovingly, "you really oughtn't to have
  • come into the house after bathing without drying yourself. You'll spoil
  • the carpet."
  • "I've _not_ been bathing! I'm trying to tell you...."
  • "Hullo!" said Bream, with amiable innocence, coming in at the tail-end
  • of the party. "Been having a jolly bathe?"
  • Mr. Bennett danced with silent irritation, and, striking a bare toe
  • against the leg of a chair, seized his left foot and staggered into the
  • arms of Webster, who had been preparing to drift off to the servants'
  • hall. Linked together, the two proceeded across the carpet in a movement
  • which suggested in equal parts the careless vigour of the cake-walk and
  • the grace of the old-fashioned mazurka.
  • "What the devil are you doing, you fool?" cried Mr. Bennett.
  • "Nothing, sir. And I should be glad if you would accept my week's
  • notice," replied Webster calmly.
  • "What's that?"
  • "My notice sir, to take effect at the expiration of the current week. I
  • cannot acquiesce in being cursed and sworn at."
  • "Oh, go to blazes!"
  • "Very good, sir." Webster withdrew like a plenipotentiary who has been
  • handed his papers on the declaration of war, and Mr. Bennett, sprang to
  • intercept Mr. Mortimer, who had slipped by and was making for the
  • stairs.
  • "Mortimer!"
  • "Oh, what _is_ it?"
  • "That infernal dog of yours. I insist on your destroying it."
  • "What's it been doing?"
  • "The savage brute chased me all over the garden and kept me sitting up
  • on that damned castle the whole of the morning!"
  • "Father darling," interposed Billie, pausing on her way up the stairs,
  • "you mustn't get excited. You know it's bad for you. I don't expect poor
  • old Smith meant any harm," she added pacifically, as she disappeared in
  • the direction of the landing.
  • "Of course he didn't," snapped Mr. Mortimer. "He's as quiet as a lamb."
  • "I tell you he chased me from one end of the garden to the other! I had
  • to run like a hare!"
  • The unfortunate Bream, whose sense of the humorous was simple and
  • childlike, was not proof against the picture thus conjured up.
  • "C'k!" giggled Bream helplessly. "C'k, c'k, c'k!"
  • Mr. Bennett turned on him. "Oh, it strikes you as funny, does it? Well,
  • let me tell you that if you think you can laugh at me
  • with--with--er--with one hand and--and--marry my daughter with the
  • other, you're wrong! You can consider your engagement at an end."
  • "Oh, I say!" ejaculated Bream, abruptly sobered.
  • "Mortimer!" bawled Mr. Bennett, once more arresting the other as he was
  • about to mount the stairs. "Do you or do you not intend to destroy that
  • dog?"
  • "I do not."
  • "I insist on your doing so. He is a menace."
  • "He is nothing of the kind. On your own showing he didn't even bite you
  • once. And every dog is allowed one bite by law. The case of Wilberforce
  • _v._ Bayliss covers that point thoroughly."
  • "I don't care about the case of Wilberforce and Bayliss...."
  • "You will find that you have to. It is a legal precedent."
  • There is something about a legal precedent which gives pause to the
  • angriest man. Mr. Bennett felt, as every layman feels when arguing with
  • a lawyer, as if he were in the coils of a python.
  • "Say, Mr. Bennett...." began Bream at his elbow.
  • "Get out!" snarled Mr. Bennett.
  • "Yes, but, say...!"
  • The green baize door at the end of the hall opened, and Webster
  • appeared.
  • "I beg your pardon, sir," said Webster, "but luncheon will be served
  • within the next few minutes. Possibly you may wish to make some change
  • of costume."
  • "Bring me my lunch on a tray in my room," said Mr. Bennett. "I am going
  • to bed."
  • "Very good, sir."
  • "But, say, Mr. Bennett...." resumed Bream.
  • "Grrh!" replied his ex-prospective-father-in-law, and bounded up the
  • stairs like a portion of the sunset which had become detached from the
  • main body.
  • § 4
  • Even into the blackest days there generally creeps an occasional ray of
  • sunshine, and there are few crises of human gloom which are not
  • lightened by a bit of luck. It was so with Mr. Bennett in his hour of
  • travail. There were lobsters for lunch, and his passion for lobsters had
  • made him the talk of three New York clubs. He was feeling a little
  • happier when Billie came in to see how he was getting on.
  • "Hullo, father. Had a nice lunch?"
  • "Yes," said Mr. Bennett, cheering up a little at the recollection.
  • "There was nothing wrong with the lunch."
  • How little we fallible mortals know! Even as he spoke, a tiny fragment
  • of lobster shell, which had been working its way silently into the tip
  • of his tongue, was settling down under the skin and getting ready to
  • cause him the most acute mental distress which he had ever known.
  • "The lunch," said Mr. Bennett, "was excellent. Lobsters!" He licked his
  • lips appreciatively.
  • "And, talking of lobsters," he went on, "I suppose that boy Bream has
  • told you that I have broken off your engagement?"
  • "Yes."
  • "You don't seem very upset," said Mr. Bennett, who was in the mood for a
  • dramatic scene and felt a little disappointed.
  • "Oh, I've become a fatalist on the subject of my engagements."
  • "I don't understand you."
  • "Well, I mean, they never seem to come to anything." Billie gazed
  • wistfully at the counterpane. "Do you know, father, I'm beginning to
  • think that I'm rather impulsive. I wish I didn't do silly things in such
  • a hurry."
  • "I don't see where the hurry comes in as regards that Mortimer boy. You
  • took ten years to make up your mind."
  • "I was not thinking of Bream. Another man."
  • "Great Heavens! Are you still imagining yourself in love with young
  • Hignett?"
  • "Oh, no! I can see now that I was never in love with poor Eustace. I was
  • thinking of a man I got engaged to on the boat!"
  • Mr. Bennett sat bolt upright in bed, and stared incredulously at his
  • surprising daughter. His head was beginning to swim.
  • "Of course I've misunderstood you," he said. "There's a catch somewhere
  • and I haven't seen it. But for a moment you gave me the impression that
  • you had promised to marry some man on the boat!"
  • "I did!"
  • "But...!" Mr. Bennett was doing sums on his fingers. "Do you mean to
  • tell me," he demanded, having brought out the answer to his
  • satisfaction, "do you mean to tell me that you have been engaged to
  • three men in three weeks?"
  • "Yes," said Billie in a small voice.
  • "Great Godfrey! Er----?"
  • "No, only three."
  • Mr. Bennett sank back on to his pillow with a snort.
  • "The trouble is," continued Billie, "one does things and doesn't know
  • how one is going to feel about it afterwards. You can do an awful lot of
  • thinking afterwards, father."
  • "I'm doing a lot of thinking now," said Mr. Bennett with austerity. "You
  • oughtn't to be allowed to go around loose!"
  • "Well, it doesn't matter. I shall never get engaged again. I shall never
  • love anyone again."
  • "Don't tell me you are still in love with this boat man?"
  • Billie nodded miserably. "I didn't realise it till we came down here.
  • But, as I sat and watched the rain, it suddenly came over me that I had
  • thrown away my life's happiness. It was as if I had been offered a
  • wonderful jewel and had refused it. I seemed to hear a voice reproaching
  • me and saying, 'You have had your chance. It will never come again!'"
  • "Don't talk nonsense!" said Mr. Bennett.
  • Billie stiffened. She had thought she had been talking rather well.
  • Mr. Bennett was silent for a moment. Then he started up with an
  • exclamation. The mention of Eustace Hignett had stirred his memory.
  • "What's young Hignett got wrong with him?" he asked.
  • "Mumps."
  • "Mumps! Good God! Not mumps!" Mr. Bennett quailed. "I've never had
  • mumps! One of the most infectious ... this is awful!... Oh, heavens! Why
  • did I ever come to this lazar-house!" cried Mr. Bennett, shaken to his
  • depths.
  • "There isn't the slightest danger, father, dear. Don't be silly. If I
  • were you, I should try to get a good sleep. You must be tired after this
  • morning."
  • "Sleep! If I only could!" said Mr. Bennett, and did so five minutes
  • after the door had closed.
  • He awoke half an hour later with a confused sense that something was
  • wrong. He had been dreaming that he was walking down Fifth Avenue at the
  • head of a military brass band, clad only in a bathing suit. As he sat up
  • in bed, blinking in the dazed fashion of the half-awakened, the band
  • seemed to be playing still. There was undeniably music in the air. The
  • room was full of it. It seemed to be coming up through the floor and
  • rolling about in chunks all round his bed.
  • Mr. Bennett blinked the last fragments of sleep out of his system, and
  • became filled with a restless irritability. There was only one
  • instrument in the house which could create this infernal din--the
  • orchestrion in the drawing-room, immediately above which, he recalled,
  • his room was situated.
  • He rang the bell for Webster.
  • "Is Mr. Mortimer playing that--that damned gas-engine in the
  • drawing-room?"
  • "Yes, sir. Tosti's 'Good-bye.' A charming air, sir."
  • "Go and tell him to stop it!"
  • "Very good, sir."
  • Mr. Bennett lay in bed and fumed. Presently the valet returned. The
  • music still continued to roll about the room.
  • "I am sorry to have to inform you, sir," said Webster, "that Mr.
  • Mortimer declines to accede to your request."
  • "Oh, he said that, did he?"
  • "That is the gist of his remarks, sir."
  • "Very good! Then give me my dressing-gown!"
  • Webster swathed his employer in the garment indicated, and returned to
  • the kitchen, where he informed the cook that, in his opinion, the
  • guv'nor was not a force, and that, if he were a betting man, he would
  • put his money in the forthcoming struggle on Consul, the
  • Almost-Human--by which affectionate nickname Mr. Mortimer senior was
  • generally alluded to in the servants' hall.
  • Mr. Bennett, meanwhile, had reached the drawing-room, and found his
  • former friend lying at full length on a sofa, smoking a cigar, a full
  • dozen feet away from the orchestrion, which continued to thunder out its
  • dirge on the passing of Summer.
  • "Will you turn that infernal thing off!" said Mr. Bennett.
  • "No!" said Mr. Mortimer.
  • "Now, now, now!" said a voice.
  • Jane Hubbard was standing in the doorway with a look of calm reproof on
  • her face.
  • "We can't have this, you know!" said Jane Hubbard. "You're disturbing my
  • patient."
  • She strode without hesitation to the instrument, explored its ribs with
  • a firm finger, pushed something, and the orchestrion broke off in the
  • middle of a bar. Then, walking serenely to the door, she passed out and
  • closed it behind her.
  • The baser side of his nature urged Mr. Bennett to triumph over the
  • vanquished.
  • "Now, what about it!" he said, ungenerously.
  • "Interfering girl!" mumbled Mr. Mortimer, chafing beneath defeat. "I've
  • a good mind to start it again."
  • "I dare you!" whooped Mr. Bennett, reverting to the phraseology of his
  • vanished childhood. "Go on! I dare you!"
  • "I've a perfect legal right.... Oh well," he said, "there are lots of
  • other things I can do!"
  • "What do you mean?" exclaimed Mr. Bennett, alarmed.
  • "Never mind!" said Mr. Mortimer, taking up a book.
  • Mr. Bennett went back to bed in an uneasy frame of mind.
  • He brooded for half an hour, and, at the expiration of that period, rang
  • for Webster and requested that Billie should be sent to him.
  • "I want you to go to London," he said, when she appeared. "I must have
  • legal advice. I want you to go and see Sir Mallaby Marlowe. Tell him
  • that Henry Mortimer is annoying me in every possible way and sheltering
  • himself behind his knowledge of the law, so that I can't get at him. Ask
  • Sir Mallaby to come down here. And, if he can't come himself, tell him
  • to send someone who can advise me. His son would do, if he knows
  • anything about the business."
  • "Oh, I'm sure he does!"
  • "Eh? How do you know?"
  • "Well, I mean, he looks as if he does!" said Billie hastily. "He looks
  • so clever!"
  • "I didn't notice it myself. Well, he'll do, if Sir Mallaby's too busy to
  • come himself. I want you to go up to-night, so that you can see him
  • first thing to-morrow morning. You can stop the night at the Savoy. I've
  • sent Webster to look out a train."
  • "There's a splendid train in about an hour. I'll take that."
  • "It's giving you a lot of trouble," said Mr. Bennett, with belated
  • consideration.
  • "Oh, _no_!" said Billie. "I'm only too glad to be able to do this for
  • you, father dear!"
  • CHAPTER XI
  • MR. BENNETT HAS A BAD NIGHT
  • The fragment of a lobster-shell which had entered Mr. Bennett's tongue
  • at twenty minutes to two in the afternoon was still in occupation at
  • half-past eleven that night, when that persecuted gentleman blew out his
  • candle and endeavoured to compose himself for a night's slumber. Its
  • unconscious host had not yet been made aware of its presence. He had a
  • vague feeling that the tip of his tongue felt a little sore, but his
  • mind was too engrossed with the task of keeping a look-out for the
  • preliminary symptoms of mumps to have leisure to bestow much attention
  • on this phenomenon. The discomfort it caused was not sufficient to keep
  • him awake, and presently he turned on his side and began to fill the
  • room with a rhythmical snoring.
  • How pleasant if one could leave him so--the good man taking his rest.
  • Facts, however, are facts; and, having crept softly from Mr. Bennett's
  • side with the feeling that at last everything is all right with him, we
  • are compelled to return three hours later to discover that everything is
  • all wrong. It is so dark in the room that our eyes can at first discern
  • nothing; then, as we grow accustomed to the blackness, we perceive him
  • sitting bolt upright in bed, staring glassily before him, while with the
  • first finger of his right hand he touches apprehensively the tip of his
  • protruding tongue.
  • At this point Mr. Bennett lights his candle--one of the charms of
  • Windles was the old-world simplicity of its lighting system--and we are
  • enabled to get a better view of him.
  • Mr. Bennett sat in the candlelight with his tongue out and the first
  • beads of a chilly perspiration bedewing his forehead. It was impossible
  • for a man of his complexion to turn pale, but he had turned as pale as
  • he could. Panic gripped him. A man whose favourite reading was medical
  • encyclopædias, he needed no doctor to tell him that this was the end.
  • Fate had dealt him a knockout blow; his number was up; and in a very
  • short while now people would be speaking of him in the past tense and
  • saying what a pity it all was.
  • A man in Mr. Bennett's position experiences strange emotions, and many
  • of them. In fact, there are scores of writers, who, reckless of the cost
  • of white paper, would devote two chapters at this point to an analysis
  • of the unfortunate man's reflections and be glad of the chance. It is
  • sufficient, however, merely to set on record that there was no stint.
  • Whatever are the emotions of a man in such a position, Mr. Bennett had
  • them. He had them all, one after another, some of them twice. He went
  • right through the list from soup to nuts, until finally he reached
  • remorse. And, having reached remorse, he allowed that to monopolise him.
  • In his early days, when he was building up his fortune, Mr. Bennett had
  • frequently done things to his competitors in Wall Street which would not
  • have been tolerated in the purer atmosphere of a lumber-camp, and, if he
  • was going to be remorseful about anything, he might well have started by
  • being remorseful about that. But it was on his most immediate past that
  • his wistful mind lingered. He had quarrelled with his lifelong friend,
  • Henry Mortimer. He had broken off his daughter's engagement with a
  • deserving young man. He had spoken harsh words to his faithful valet.
  • The more Mr. Bennett examined his conduct, the deeper the iron entered
  • into his soul.
  • Fortunately, none of his acts were irreparable. He could undo them. He
  • could make amends. The small hours of the morning are not perhaps the
  • most suitable time for making amends, but Mr. Bennett was too remorseful
  • to think of that. Do It Now had ever been his motto, so he started by
  • ringing the bell for Webster.
  • The same writers who would have screamed with joy at the chance of
  • dilating on Mr. Bennett's emotions would find a congenial task in
  • describing the valet's thought-processes when the bell roused him from
  • a refreshing sleep at a few minutes after three a.m. However, by the
  • time he entered his employer's room he was his own calm self again.
  • "Good morning, sir," he remarked equably. "I fear that it will be the
  • matter of a few minutes to prepare your shaving water. I was not aware,"
  • said Webster in manly apology for having been found wanting, "that you
  • intended rising so early."
  • "Webster," said Mr. Bennett, "I'm a dying man!"
  • "Indeed, sir?"
  • "A dying man!" repeated Mr. Bennett.
  • "Very good, sir. Which of your suits would you wish me to lay out?"
  • Mr. Bennett had the feeling that something was going wrong with the
  • scene.
  • "Webster," he said, "this morning we had an unfortunate
  • misunderstanding. I'm sorry."
  • "Pray don't mention it, sir."
  • "I was to blame. Webster, you have been a faithful servant! You have
  • stuck to me, Webster, through thick and thin!" said Mr. Bennett, who had
  • half persuaded himself by this time that the other had been in the
  • family for years instead of having been engaged at a registry-office a
  • little less than a month ago. "Through thick and thin!" repeated Mr.
  • Bennett.
  • "I have endeavoured to give satisfaction, sir."
  • "I want to reward you, Webster."
  • "Thank you very much, sir."
  • "Take my trousers!"
  • Webster raised a deprecating hand.
  • "No, no, sir, thanking you exceedingly, I couldn't really! You will need
  • them, sir, and I assure you I have an ample supply."
  • "Take my trousers," repeated Mr. Bennett, "and feel in the right-hand
  • pocket. There is some money there."
  • "I'm sure I'm very much obliged, sir," said Webster, beginning for the
  • first time to feel that there was a bright side. He embarked upon the
  • treasure-hunt. "The sum is sixteen pounds eleven shillings and
  • threepence, sir."
  • "Keep it!"
  • "Thank you very much, sir. Would there be anything further, sir?"
  • "Why, no," said Mr. Bennett, feeling dissatisfied nevertheless. There
  • had been a lack of the deepest kind of emotion in the interview, and his
  • yearning soul resented it. "Why, no."
  • "Good-night, sir."
  • "Stop a moment. Which is Mr. Mortimer's room?"
  • "Mr. Mortimer, senior, sir? It is at the further end of this passage, on
  • the left facing the main staircase. Good-night, sir. I am extremely
  • obliged. I will bring you your shaving-water when you ring."
  • Mr. Bennett, left alone, mused for awhile, then, rising from his bed,
  • put on his dressing-gown, took his candle, and went down the passage.
  • In a less softened mood, the first thing Mr. Bennett would have done on
  • crossing the threshold of the door facing the staircase would have been
  • to notice resentfully that Mr. Mortimer, with his usual astuteness, had
  • collared the best bedroom in the house. The soft carpet gave out no
  • sound as Mr. Bennett approached the wide and luxurious bed. The light of
  • the candle fell on the back of a semi-bald head. Mr. Mortimer was
  • sleeping with his face buried in the pillow. It cannot have been good
  • for him, but that was what he was doing. From the portion of the pillow
  • in which his face was buried strange gurgles proceeded, like the distant
  • rumble of an approaching train on the Underground.
  • "Mortimer," said Mr. Bennett.
  • The train stopped at a station to pick up passengers, and rumbled on
  • again.
  • "Henry!" said Mr. Bennett, and nudged his sleeping friend in the small
  • of the back.
  • "Leave it on the mat," mumbled Mr. Mortimer, stirring slightly and
  • uncovering one corner of his mouth.
  • Mr. Bennett began to forget his remorse in a sense of injury. He felt
  • like a man with a good story to tell who can get nobody to listen to
  • him. He nudged the other again, more vehemently this time. Mr. Mortimer
  • made a noise like a gramophone when the needle slips, moved restlessly
  • for a moment, then sat up, staring at the candle.
  • "Rabbits! Rabbits! Rabbits!" said Mr. Mortimer, and sank back again. He
  • had begun to rumble before he touched the pillow.
  • "What do you mean, rabbits?" said Mr. Bennett sharply.
  • The not unreasonable query fell on deaf ears. Mr. Mortimer was already
  • entering a tunnel.
  • "Much too pink!" he murmured as the pillow engulfed him.
  • What steps Mr. Bennett would have taken at this juncture, one cannot
  • say. Probably he would have given the thing up in despair and retired,
  • for it is weary work forgiving a sleeping man. But, as he bent above his
  • slumbering friend, a drop of warm grease detached itself from the candle
  • and fell into Mr. Mortimer's exposed ear. The sleeper wakened.
  • "What? What? What?" he exclaimed, bounding up. "Who's that?"
  • "It's me--Rufus," said Mr. Bennett. "Henry, I'm dying!"
  • "Drying?"
  • "Dying!"
  • Mr. Mortimer yawned cavernously. The mists of sleep were engulfing him
  • again.
  • "Eight rabbits sitting on the lawn," he muttered. "But too pink! Much
  • too pink!"
  • And, as if considering he had borne his full share in the conversation
  • and that no more could be expected of him, he snuggled down into the
  • pillow again.
  • Mr. Bennett's sense of injury became more acute. For a moment he was
  • strongly tempted to try the restorative effects of candle-grease once
  • more, but, just as he was on the point of succumbing, a shooting pain,
  • as if somebody had run a red-hot needle into his tongue, reminded him
  • of his situation. A dying man cannot pass his last hours dropping
  • candle-grease into people's ears. After all, it was perhaps a little
  • late, and there would be plenty of time to become reconciled to Mr.
  • Mortimer to-morrow. His task now was to seek out Bream and bring him the
  • glad news of his renewed engagement.
  • He closed the door quietly, and proceeded upstairs. Bream's bedroom, he
  • knew, was the one just off the next landing. He turned the handle
  • quietly, and went in. Having done this, he coughed.
  • "Drop that pistol!" said the voice of Jane Hubbard immediately, with
  • quiet severity. "I've got you covered!"
  • Mr. Bennett had no pistol, but he dropped the candle. It would have been
  • a nice point to say whether he was more perturbed by the discovery that
  • he had got into the wrong room, and that room a lady's, or by the fact
  • that the lady whose wrong room it was had pointed what appeared to be a
  • small cannon at him over the foot of the bed. It was not, as a matter of
  • fact, a cannon but the elephant gun, which Miss Hubbard carried with her
  • everywhere--a girl's best friend.
  • "My dear young lady!" he gasped.
  • On the five occasions during recent years on which men had entered her
  • tent with the object of murdering her, Jane Hubbard had shot without
  • making inquiries. What strange feminine weakness it was that had caused
  • her to utter a challenge on this occasion, she could not have said.
  • Probably it was due to the enervating effects of civilisation. She was
  • glad now that she had done so, for, being awake and in full possession
  • of her faculties, she perceived that the intruder, whoever he was, had
  • no evil intentions.
  • "Who is it?" she asked.
  • "I don't know how to apologise!"
  • "That's all right! Let's have a light." A match flared in the darkness.
  • Miss Hubbard lit her candle, and gazed at Mr. Bennett with quiet
  • curiosity. "Walking in your sleep?" she inquired.
  • "No, no!"
  • "Not so loud! You'll wake Mr. Hignett. He's next door. That's why I took
  • this room, in case he was restless in the night."
  • "I want to see Bream Mortimer," said Mr. Bennett.
  • "He's in my old room, two doors along the passage. What do you want to
  • see him about?"
  • "I wish to inform him that he may still consider himself engaged to my
  • daughter."
  • "Oh, well, I don't suppose he'll mind being woken up to hear that. But
  • what's the idea?"
  • "It's a long story."
  • "That's all right. Let's make a night of it."
  • "I am a dying man. I awoke an hour ago with a feeling of acute pain...."
  • Miss Hubbard listened to the story of his symptoms with interest but
  • without excitement.
  • "What nonsense!" she said at the conclusion.
  • "I assure you...."
  • "I'd like to bet it's nothing serious at all."
  • "My dear young lady," said Mr. Bennett, piqued. "I have devoted a
  • considerable part of my life to medical study...."
  • "I know. That's the trouble. People oughtn't to be allowed to read
  • medical books."
  • "Well, we need not discuss it," said Mr. Bennett stiffly. He resented
  • being dragged out of the valley of the shadow of death by the scruff of
  • his neck like this. A dying man has his dignity to think of. "I will
  • leave you now, and go and see young Mortimer." He clung to a hope that
  • Bream Mortimer at least would receive him fittingly. "Good-night!"
  • "But wait a moment!"
  • Mr. Bennett left the room, unheeding. He was glad to go. Jane Hubbard
  • irritated him.
  • His expectation of getting more satisfactory results from Bream was
  • fulfilled. It took some time to rouse that young man from a slumber
  • almost as deep as his father's; but, once roused, he showed a gratifying
  • appreciation of the gravity of affairs. Joy at one half of his visitor's
  • news competed with consternation and sympathy at the other half. He
  • thanked Mr. Bennett profusely, showed a fitting concern on learning of
  • his terrible situation, and evinced a practical desire to help by
  • offering him a bottle of liniment which he had found useful for
  • gnat-stings. Declining this, though not ungratefully, Mr. Bennett
  • withdrew and made his way down the passage again with something
  • approaching a glow in his heart. The glow lasted till he had almost
  • reached the landing, when it was dissipated by a soft but compelling
  • voice from the doorway of Miss Hubbard's room.
  • "Come here!" said Miss Hubbard. She had put on a blue bath-robe, and
  • looked like a pugilist about to enter the ring.
  • "Well?" said Mr. Bennett coldly, coming nevertheless.
  • "I'm going to have a look at that tongue of yours," said Jane firmly.
  • "It's my opinion that you're making a lot of fuss over nothing."
  • Mr. Bennett drew himself up as haughtily as a fat man in a dressing-gown
  • can, but the effect was wasted on his companion, who had turned and gone
  • into her room.
  • "Come in here," she said.
  • Tougher men than Mr. Bennett had found it impossible to resist the note
  • of calm command in that voice, but for all that he reproached himself
  • for his weakness in obeying.
  • "Sit down!" said Jane Hubbard.
  • She indicated a low stool beside the dressing-table.
  • "Put your tongue out!" she said, as Mr. Bennett, still under her strange
  • influence, lowered himself on to the stool. "Further out! That's right.
  • Keep it like that!"
  • "Ouch!" exclaimed Mr. Bennett, bounding up.
  • "Don't make such a noise! You'll wake Mr. Hignett. Sit down again!"
  • "I...."
  • "Sit down!"
  • Mr. Bennett sat down. Miss Hubbard extended once more the hand holding
  • the needle which had caused his outcry. He winced away from it
  • desperately.
  • "Baby!" said Miss Hubbard reprovingly. "Why, I once sewed eighteen
  • stitches in a native bearer's head, and he didn't make half the fuss
  • you're making. Now, keep quite still."
  • Mr. Bennett did--for perhaps the space of two seconds. Then he leaped
  • from his seat once more. It was a tribute to the forceful personality of
  • the fair surgeon, if one were needed, that the squeal he uttered was a
  • subdued one. He was just about to speak--he had framed the opening words
  • of a strong protest--when suddenly he became aware of something in his
  • mouth, something small and hard. He removed it and examined it as it lay
  • on his finger. It was a minute fragment of lobster-shell. And at the
  • same time he became conscious of a marked improvement in the state of
  • his tongue. The swelling had gone.
  • "I told you so!" said Jane Hubbard placidly. "What is it?"
  • "It--it appears to be a piece of...."
  • "Lobster-shell. And we had lobster for lunch. Good-night."
  • Half-way down the stairs, it suddenly occurred to Mr. Bennett that he
  • wanted to sing. He wanted to sing very loud, and for quite some time. He
  • restrained the impulse, and returned to bed. But relief such as his was
  • too strong to keep bottled up. He wanted to tell someone all about it.
  • He needed a confidant.
  • Webster, the valet, awakened once again by the ringing of his bell,
  • sighed resignedly and made his way downstairs.
  • "Did you ring, sir?"
  • "Webster," cried Mr. Bennett, "it's all right! I'm not dying after all!
  • I'm not dying after all, Webster!"
  • "Very good, sir," said Webster. "Will there be anything further?"
  • CHAPTER XII
  • THE LURID PAST OF JNO. PETERS
  • "That's right!" said Sir Mallaby Marlowe. "Work while you're young, Sam,
  • work while you're young." He regarded his son's bent head with
  • affectionate approval. "What's the book to-day?"
  • "Widgery on Nisi Prius Evidence," said Sam, without looking up.
  • "Capital!" said Sir Mallaby. "Highly improving and as interesting as a
  • novel--some novels. There's a splendid bit on, I think, page two hundred
  • and fifty-four where the hero finds out all about Copyhold and Customary
  • Estates. It's a wonderfully powerful situation. It appears--but I won't
  • spoil it for you. Mind you don't skip to see how it all comes out in the
  • end!" Sir Mallaby suspended conversation while he addressed an imaginary
  • ball with the mashie which he had taken out of his golf-bag. For this
  • was the day when he went down to Walton Heath for his weekly foursome
  • with three old friends. His tubby form was clad in tweed of a violent
  • nature, with knickerbockers and stockings. "Sam!"
  • "Well?"
  • "Sam, a man at the club showed me a new grip the other day. Instead of
  • overlapping the little finger of the right hand.... Oh, by the way,
  • Sam."
  • "Yes?"
  • "I should lock up the office to-day if I were you, or anxious clients
  • will be coming in and asking for advice, and you'll find yourself in
  • difficulties. I shall be gone, and Peters is away on his holiday. You'd
  • better lock the outer door."
  • "All right," said Sam absently. He was finding Widgery stiff reading. He
  • had just got to the bit about Raptu Haeredis, which--as of course you
  • know, is a writ for taking away an heir holding in socage.
  • Sir Mallaby looked at his watch.
  • "Well, I'll have to be going. See you later, Sam."
  • "Good-bye."
  • Sir Mallaby went out, and Sam, placing both elbows on the desk and
  • twining his fingers in his hair, returned with a frown of consternation
  • to his grappling with Widgery. For perhaps ten minutes the struggle was
  • an even one, then gradually Widgery got the upper hand. Sam's mind,
  • numbed by constant batterings against the stony ramparts of legal
  • phraseology, weakened, faltered, and dropped away; and a moment later
  • his thoughts, as so often happened when he was alone, darted off and
  • began to circle round the image of Billie Bennett.
  • Since they had last met, at Sir Mallaby's dinner-table, Sam had told
  • himself perhaps a hundred times that he cared nothing about Billie, that
  • she had gone out of his life and was dead to him; but unfortunately he
  • did not believe it. A man takes a deal of convincing on a point like
  • this, and Sam had never succeeded in convincing himself for more than
  • two minutes at a time. It was useless to pretend that he did not still
  • love Billie more than ever, because he knew he did; and now, as the
  • truth swept over him for the hundred and first time, he groaned hollowly
  • and gave himself up to the grey despair which is the almost inseparable
  • companion of young men in his position.
  • So engrossed was he in his meditation that he did not hear the light
  • footstep in the outer office, and it was only when it was followed by a
  • tap on the door of the inner office that he awoke with a start to the
  • fact that clients were in his midst. He wished that he had taken his
  • father's advice and locked up the office. Probably this was some
  • frightful bore who wanted to make his infernal will or something, and
  • Sam had neither the ability nor the inclination to assist him.
  • Was it too late to escape? Perhaps if he did not answer the knock, the
  • blighter might think there was nobody at home. But suppose he opened the
  • door and peeped in? A spasm of Napoleonic strategy seized Sam. He
  • dropped silently to the floor and concealed himself under the desk.
  • Napoleon was always doing that sort of thing.
  • There was another tap. Then, as he had anticipated, the door opened.
  • Sam, crouched like a hare in its form, held his breath. It seemed to him
  • that he was going to bring this delicate operation off with success. He
  • felt he had acted just as Napoleon would have done in a similar crisis.
  • And so, no doubt, he had to a certain extent; only Napoleon would have
  • seen to it that his boots and about eighteen inches of trousered legs
  • were not sticking out, plainly visible to all who entered.
  • "Good morning," said a voice.
  • Sam thrilled from the top of his head to the soles of his feet. It was
  • the voice which had been ringing in his ears through all his waking
  • hours.
  • "Are you busy, Mr. Marlowe?" asked Billie, addressing the boots.
  • Sam wriggled out from under the desk like a disconcerted tortoise.
  • "Dropped my pen," he mumbled, as he rose to the surface.
  • He pulled himself together with an effort that was like a physical
  • exercise. He stared at Billie dumbly. Then, recovering speech, he
  • invited her to sit down, and seated himself at the desk.
  • "Dropped my pen!" he gurgled again.
  • "Yes?" said Billie.
  • "Fountain-pen," babbled Sam, "with a broad nib."
  • "Yes?"
  • "A broad _gold_ nib," went on Sam, with the painful exactitude which
  • comes only from embarrassment or the early stages of intoxication.
  • "Really?" said Billie, and Sam blinked and told himself resolutely that
  • this would not do. He was not appearing to advantage. It suddenly
  • occurred to him that his hair was standing on end as the result of his
  • struggle with Widgery. He smoothed it down hastily, and felt a trifle
  • more composed. The old fighting spirit of the Marlowes now began to
  • assert itself to some extent. He must make an effort to appear as little
  • of a fool as possible in this girl's eyes. And what eyes they were!
  • Golly! Like stars! Like two bright planets in....
  • However, that was neither here nor there. He pulled down his waistcoat
  • and became cold and business-like,--the dry young lawyer.
  • "Er--how do you do, Miss Bennett?" he said with a question in his voice,
  • raising his eyebrows in a professional way. He modelled this performance
  • on that of lawyers he had seen on the stage, and wished he had some
  • snuff to take or something to tap against his front teeth. "Miss
  • Bennett, I believe?"
  • The effect of the question upon Billie was disastrous. She had come to
  • this office with beating heart, prepared to end all misunderstandings,
  • to sob on her soul-mate's shoulder and generally make everything up; but
  • at this inane exhibition the fighting spirit of the Bennetts--which was
  • fully as militant as that of the Marlowes--became roused. She told
  • herself that she had been mistaken in supposing that she still loved
  • this man. She was a proud girl and refused to admit herself capable of
  • loving any man who looked at her as if she was something that the cat
  • had brought in. She drew herself up stiffly.
  • "Yes," she replied. "How clever of you to remember me."
  • "I have a good memory."
  • "How nice! So have I!"
  • There was a pause, during which Billie allowed her gaze to travel
  • casually about the room. Sam occupied the intermission by staring
  • furtively at her profile. He was by now in a thoroughly overwrought
  • condition, and the thumping of his heart sounded to him as if workmen
  • were mending the street outside. How beautiful she looked, with that red
  • hair peeping out beneath her hat and.... However!
  • "Is there anything I can do for you?" he asked in the sort of voice
  • Widgery might have used. Sam always pictured Widgery as a small man with
  • bushy eyebrows, a thin face, and a voice like a rusty file.
  • "Well, I really wanted to see Sir Mallaby."
  • "My father has been called away on important business to Walton Heath.
  • Cannot I act as his substitute?"
  • "Do you know anything about the law?"
  • "Do I know anything about the law!" echoed Sam, amazed. "Do I know----!
  • Why, I was reading my Widgery on Nisi Prius Evidence when you came in."
  • "Oh, were you?" said Billie, interested. "Do you always read on the
  • floor?"
  • "I told you I dropped my pen," said Sam coldly.
  • "And of course you couldn't read without that! Well, as a matter of
  • fact, this has nothing to do with Nisi--what you said."
  • "I have not specialised exclusively on Nisi Prius Evidence. I know the
  • law in all its branches."
  • "Then what would you do if a man insisted on playing the orchestrion
  • when you wanted to get to sleep?"
  • "The orchestrion?"
  • "Yes."
  • "The orchestrion, eh? Ah! H'm!" said Sam.
  • "You still haven't made it quite clear," said Billie.
  • "I was thinking."
  • "Oh, if you want to _think_!"
  • "Tell me the facts," said Sam.
  • "Well, Mr. Mortimer and my father have taken a house together in the
  • country...."
  • "I knew that."
  • "_What_ a memory you have!" said Billie kindly. "Well, for some reason
  • or other they have quarrelled, and now Mr. Mortimer is doing everything
  • he can to make father uncomfortable. Yesterday afternoon father wanted
  • to sleep, and Mr. Mortimer started this orchestrion just to annoy him."
  • "I think--I'm not quite sure--I think that's a tort," said Sam.
  • "A what?"
  • "Either a tort or a malfeasance."
  • "Why, you do know something about it after all!" cried Billie, startled
  • into a sort of friendliness in spite of herself. And at the words and
  • the sight of her quick smile Sam's professional composure reeled on its
  • foundations. He had half risen, with the purpose of springing up and
  • babbling of the passion that consumed him, when the chill reflection
  • came to him that this girl had once said that she considered him
  • ridiculous. If he let himself go, would she not continue to think him
  • ridiculous? He sagged back into his seat; and at that moment there came
  • another tap on the door which, opening, revealed the sinister face of
  • the holiday-making Peters.
  • "Good morning, Mr. Samuel," said Jno. Peters. "Good morning, Miss
  • Milliken. Oh!"
  • He vanished as abruptly as he had appeared. He perceived that what he
  • had taken at first glance for the stenographer was a client, and that
  • the junior partner was engaged on a business conference. He left behind
  • him a momentary silence.
  • "What a horrible-looking man!" said Billie, breaking it with a little
  • gasp. Jno. Peters often affected the opposite sex like that at first
  • sight.
  • "I beg your pardon?" said Sam absently.
  • "What a dreadful-looking man! He quite frightened me!"
  • For some moments Sam sat without speaking. If this had not been one of
  • his Napoleonic mornings, no doubt the sudden arrival of his old friend,
  • Mr. Peters, whom he had imagined at his home in Putney packing for his
  • trip to America, would have suggested nothing to him. As it was, it
  • suggested a great deal. He had had a brain-wave, and for fully a minute
  • he sat tingling under its impact. He was not a young man who often had
  • brain-waves, and, when they came, they made him rather dizzy.
  • "Who is he?" asked Billie. "He seemed to know you? And who," she
  • demanded after a slight pause, "is Miss Milliken?"
  • Sam drew a deep breath.
  • "It's rather a sad story," he said. "His name is John Peters. He used to
  • be clerk here."
  • "But he isn't any longer?"
  • "No." Sam shook his head. "We had to get rid of him."
  • "I don't wonder. A man looking like that...."
  • "It wasn't that so much," said Sam. "The thing that annoyed father was
  • that he tried to shoot Miss Milliken."
  • Billie uttered a cry of horror.
  • "He tried to shoot Miss Milliken!"
  • "He _did_ shoot her--the third time," said Sam, warming to his work.
  • "Only in the arm, fortunately," he added. "But my father is rather a
  • stern disciplinarian and he had to go. I mean, we couldn't keep him
  • after that."
  • "Good gracious!"
  • "She used to be my father's stenographer, and she was thrown a good deal
  • with Peters. It was quite natural that he should fall in love with her.
  • She was a beautiful girl, with rather your own shade of hair. Peters is
  • a man of volcanic passions, and, when, after she had given him to
  • understand that his love was returned, she informed him one day that she
  • was engaged to a fellow at Ealing West, he went right off his onion--I
  • mean, he became completely distraught. I must say that he concealed it
  • very effectively at first. We had no inkling of his condition till he
  • came in with the pistol. And, after that ... well, as I say, we had to
  • dismiss him. A great pity, for he was a good clerk. Still, it wouldn't
  • do. It wasn't only that he tried to shoot Miss Milliken. The thing
  • became an obsession with him, and we found that he had a fixed idea that
  • every red-haired woman who came into the office was the girl who had
  • deceived him. You can see how awkward that made it. Red hair is so
  • fashionable now-a-days."
  • "My hair is red!" whispered Billie pallidly.
  • "Yes, I noticed it myself. I told you it was much the same shade as Miss
  • Milliken's. It's rather fortunate that I happened to be here with you
  • when he came."
  • "But he may be lurking out there still!"
  • "I expect he is," said Sam carelessly. "Yes, I suppose he is. Would you
  • like me to go and send him away? All right."
  • "But--but is it safe?"
  • Sam uttered a light laugh.
  • "I don't mind taking a risk or two for your sake," he said, and
  • sauntered from the room, closing the door behind him. Billie followed
  • him with worshipping eyes.
  • Jno. Peters rose politely from the chair in which he had seated himself
  • for the more comfortable perusal of the copy of _Home Whispers_ which he
  • had brought with him to refresh his mind in the event of the firm being
  • too busy to see him immediately. He was particularly interested in the
  • series of chats with Young Mothers.
  • "Hullo, Peters," said Sam. "Want anything?"
  • "Very sorry to have disturbed you, Mr. Samuel. I just looked in to say
  • good-bye. I sail on Saturday, and my time will be pretty fully taken up
  • all the week. I have to go down to the country to get some final
  • instructions from the client whose important papers I am taking over.
  • I'm sorry to have missed your father, Mr. Samuel."
  • "Yes, this is his golf day. I'll tell him you looked in."
  • "Is there anything I can do before I go?"
  • "Do?"
  • "Well--"--Jno. Peters coughed tactfully--"I see that you are engaged
  • with a client, Mr. Samuel, and I was wondering if any little point of
  • law had arisen with which you did not feel yourself quite capable of
  • coping, in which case I might perhaps be of assistance."
  • "Oh, that lady," said Sam. "That was Miss Milliken's sister."
  • "Indeed? I didn't know Miss Milliken had a sister."
  • "No?" said Sam.
  • "She is not very like her in appearance."
  • "No. This one is the beauty of the family, I believe. A very bright,
  • intelligent girl. I was telling her about your revolver just before you
  • came in, and she was most interested. It's a pity you haven't got it
  • with you now, to show to her."
  • "Oh, but I have it! I have, Mr. Samuel!" said Peters, opening a small
  • handbag and taking out a hymn-book, half a pound of mixed chocolates, a
  • tongue sandwich, and the pistol, in the order named. "I was on my way to
  • the Rupert Street range for a little practice. I should be glad to show
  • it to her."
  • "Well, wait here a minute or two," said Sam. "I'll have finished talking
  • business in a moment."
  • He returned to the inner office.
  • "Well?" cried Billie.
  • "Eh? Oh, he's gone," said Sam. "I persuaded him to go away. He was a
  • little excited, poor fellow. And now let us return to what we were
  • talking about. You say...." He broke off with an exclamation, and
  • glanced at his watch. "Good Heavens! I had no idea of the time. I
  • promised to run up and see a man in one of the offices in the next
  • court. He wants to consult me on some difficulty which has arisen with
  • one of his clients. Rightly or wrongly he values my advice. Can you
  • spare me for a short while? I shan't be more than ten minutes."
  • "Certainly."
  • "Here is something you may care to look at while I'm gone. I don't know
  • if you have read it? Widgery on Nisi Prius Evidence. Most interesting."
  • He went out. Jno. Peters looked up from his _Home Whispers_.
  • "You can go in now," said Sam.
  • "Certainly, Mr. Samuel, certainly."
  • Sam took up the copy of _Home Whispers_ and sat down with his feet on
  • the desk. He turned to the serial story and began to read the synopsis.
  • In the inner room Billie, who had rejected the mental refreshment
  • offered by Widgery and was engaged on making a tour of the office,
  • looking at the portraits of whiskered men whom she took correctly to be
  • the Thorpes, Prescotts, Winslows, and Applebys mentioned on the
  • contents-bill outside, was surprised to hear the door open at her back.
  • She had not expected Sam to return so instantaneously.
  • Nor had he done so. It was not Sam who entered. It was a man of
  • repellent aspect whom she recognised instantly, for Jno. Peters was one
  • of those men who, once seen, are not easily forgotten. He was smiling a
  • cruel, cunning smile--at least, she thought he was; Mr. Peters himself
  • was under the impression that his face was wreathed in a benevolent
  • simper; and in his hand he bore the largest pistol ever seen outside a
  • motion-picture studio.
  • "How do you do, Miss Milliken?" he said.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • SHOCKS ALL ROUND
  • Billie had been standing near the wall, inspecting a portrait of the
  • late Mr. Josiah Appleby, of which the kindest thing one can say is that
  • one hopes it did not do him justice. She now shrank back against this
  • wall, as if she were trying to get through it. The edge of the
  • portrait's frame tilted her hat out of the straight, but in this supreme
  • moment she did not even notice it.
  • "Er--how do you do?" she said.
  • If she had not been an exceedingly pretty girl, one would have said that
  • she spoke squeakily. The fighting spirit of the Bennetts, though it was
  • considerable fighting spirit, had not risen to this emergency. It had
  • ebbed out of her, leaving in its place a cold panic. She had seen this
  • sort of thing in the movies--there was one series of pictures, "The
  • Dangers of Diana," where something of the kind had happened to the
  • heroine in every reel--but she had not anticipated that it would ever
  • happen to her; and consequently she had not thought out any plan for
  • coping with such a situation. A grave error. In this world one should be
  • prepared for everything, or where is one?
  • "I've brought the revolver," said Mr. Peters.
  • "So--so I see!" said Billie.
  • Mr. Peters nursed the weapon affectionately in his hand. He was rather a
  • shy man with women as a rule, but what Sam had told him about her being
  • interested in his revolver had made his heart warm to this girl.
  • "I was just on my way to have a little practice at the range," he said.
  • "Then I thought I might as well look in here."
  • "I suppose--I suppose you're a good shot?" quavered Billie.
  • "I seldom miss," said Jno. Peters.
  • Billie shuddered. Then, reflecting that the longer she engaged this
  • maniac in conversation, the more hope there was of Sam coming back in
  • time to save her, she essayed further small-talk.
  • "It's--it's very ugly!"
  • "Oh, no!" said Mr. Peters, hurt.
  • Billie perceived that she had said the wrong thing.
  • "Very deadly-looking, I meant," she corrected herself hastily.
  • "It may have deadly work to do, Miss Milliken," said Mr. Peters.
  • Conversation languished again. Billie had no further remarks to make of
  • immediate interest, and Mr. Peters was struggling with a return of the
  • deplorable shyness which so handicapped him in his dealings with the
  • other sex. After a few moments, he pulled himself together again, and,
  • as his first act was to replace the pistol in the pocket of his coat,
  • Billie became conscious of a faint stirring of relief.
  • "The great thing," said Jno. Peters, "is to learn to draw quickly. Like
  • this!" he added producing the revolver with something of the smoothness
  • and rapidity with which Billie, in happier moments, had seen Bream
  • Mortimer take a bowl of gold fish out of a tall hat. "Everything depends
  • on getting the first shot! The first shot, Miss Milliken, is vital."
  • Suddenly Billie had an inspiration. It was hopeless, she knew, to try to
  • convince this poor demented creature, obsessed with his _idée fixe_,
  • that she was not Miss Milliken. Denial would be a waste of time, and
  • might even infuriate him into precipitating the tragedy. It was
  • imperative that she should humour him. And, while she was humouring him,
  • it suddenly occurred to her, why not do it thoroughly?
  • "Mr. Peters," she cried, "you are quite mistaken!"
  • "I beg your pardon," said Jno. Peters, with not a little asperity.
  • "Nothing of the kind!"
  • "You are!"
  • "I assure you I am not. Quickness in the draw is essential...."
  • "You have been misinformed."
  • "Well, I had it direct from the man at the Rupert Street range," said
  • Mr. Peters stiffly. "And if you have ever seen a picture called 'Two-Gun
  • Thomas'...."
  • "Mr. Peters," cried Billie desperately. He was making her head swim with
  • his meaningless ravings. "Mr. Peters, hear me! I am not married to a man
  • at Ealing West!"
  • Mr. Peters betrayed no excitement at the information. This girl seemed
  • for some reason to consider her situation an extraordinary one, but many
  • women, he was aware, were in a similar position. In fact, he could not
  • at the moment think of any of his feminine acquaintances who _were_
  • married to men at Ealing West.
  • "Indeed?" he said politely.
  • "Won't you believe me?" exclaimed Billie wildly.
  • "Why, certainly, certainly," said Jno. Peters.
  • "Thank God!" said Billie. "I'm not even engaged! It's all been a
  • terrible mistake!"
  • When two people in a small room are speaking on two distinct and
  • different subjects and neither knows what on earth the other is driving
  • at, there is bound to be a certain amount of mental confusion; but at
  • this point Jno. Peters, though still not wholly equal to the
  • intellectual pressure of the conversation, began to see a faint shimmer
  • of light behind the clouds. In a nebulous kind of way he began to
  • understand that the girl had come to consult the firm about a
  • breach-of-promise action. Some unknown man at Ealing West had been
  • trifling with her heart--hardened lawyer's clerk as he was, that
  • poignant cry "I'm not even engaged!" had touched Mr. Peters--and she
  • wished to start proceedings. Mr. Peters felt almost in his depth again.
  • He put the revolver in his pocket, and drew out a note-book.
  • "I should be glad to hear the facts," he said with professional
  • courtesy. "In the absence of the guv'nor...."
  • "I have told you the facts!"
  • "This man at Ealing West," said Mr. Peters, moistening the point of his
  • pencil, "he wrote you letters proposing marriage?"
  • "No, no, no!"
  • "At any rate," said Mr. Peters, disappointed but hopeful, "he made love
  • to you before witnesses?"
  • "Never! Never! There is no man at Ealing West! There never was a man at
  • Ealing West!"
  • It was at this point that Jno. Peters began for the first time to
  • entertain serious doubts of the girl's mental balance. The most
  • elementary acquaintance with the latest census told him that there were
  • any number of men at Ealing West. The place was full of them. Would a
  • sane woman have made an assertion to the contrary? He thought not, and
  • he was glad that he had the revolver with him. She had done nothing as
  • yet actively violent, but it was nice to feel prepared. He took it out
  • and laid it nonchalantly in his lap.
  • The sight of the weapon acted on Billie electrically. She flung out her
  • hands, in a gesture of passionate appeal, and played her last card.
  • "I love _you_!" she cried. She wished she could have remembered his
  • first name. It would have rounded off the sentence neatly. In such a
  • moment she could hardly call him "Mr. Peters." "You are the only man I
  • love."
  • "My gracious goodness!" ejaculated Mr. Peters, and nearly fell over
  • backwards. To a naturally shy man this sudden and wholly unexpected
  • declaration was disconcerting; and the clerk was, moreover, engaged. He
  • blushed violently. And yet, even in that moment of consternation, he
  • could not check a certain thrill. No man thinks he is as plain as he
  • really is, but Jno. Peters had always come fairly near to a correct
  • estimate of his charms, and it had always seemed to him, that, in
  • inducing his fiancée to accept him, he had gone some. He now began to
  • wonder if he were not really rather a devil of a chap after all. There
  • must be precious few men going about capable of inspiring devotion like
  • this on the strength of about six and a half minutes casual
  • conversation.
  • Calmer thoughts succeeded this little flicker of complacency. The girl
  • was mad. That was the fact of the matter. He got up and began to edge
  • towards the door. Mr. Samuel would be returning shortly, and he ought to
  • be warned.
  • "So that's all right, isn't it!" said Billie.
  • "Oh, quite, quite!" said Mr. Peters. "Er--Thank you very much!"
  • "I thought you would be pleased," said Billie, relieved but puzzled. For
  • a man of volcanic passions, as Sam Marlowe had described him, he seemed
  • to be taking the thing very calmly. She had anticipated a strenuous
  • scene.
  • "Oh, it's a great compliment!" Mr. Peters assured her.
  • At this point Sam came in, interrupting the conversation at a moment
  • when it had reached a somewhat difficult stage. He had finished the
  • instalment of the serial story in _Home Whispers_, and, looking at his
  • watch, he fancied that he had allowed sufficient time to elapse for
  • events to have matured along the lines which his imagination had
  • indicated.
  • The atmosphere of the room seemed to him, as he entered, a little
  • strained. Billie looked pale and agitated. Mr. Peters looked rather
  • agitated, too. Sam caught Billie's eye. It had an unspoken appeal in it.
  • He gave an imperceptible nod, a reassuring nod, the nod of a man who
  • understood all and was prepared to handle the situation.
  • "Come, Peters," he said in a deep, firm, quiet voice, laying a hand on
  • the clerk's arm. "It's time that you went."
  • "Yes, indeed, Mr. Samuel! Yes, yes, indeed!"
  • "I'll see you out," said Sam soothingly, and led him through the outer
  • office and on to the landing outside. "Well, good luck, Peters," he
  • said, as they stood at the head of the stairs. "I hope you have a
  • pleasant trip. Why, what's the matter? You seem upset."
  • "That girl, Mr. Samuel! I really think--really, she cannot be quite
  • right in her head."
  • "Nonsense, nonsense!" said Sam firmly. "She's all right! Well,
  • good-bye."
  • "Good-bye, Mr. Samuel."
  • "When did you say you were sailing?"
  • "Next Saturday, Mr. Samuel. But I fear I shall have no opportunity of
  • seeing you again before then. I have packing to do and I have to see
  • this gentleman down in the country...."
  • "All right. Then we'll say good-bye now. Good-bye, Peters. Mind you have
  • a good time in America. I'll tell my father you called."
  • Sam watched him out of sight down the stairs, then turned and made his
  • way back to the inner office. Billie was sitting limply on the chair
  • which Jno. Peters had occupied. She sprang to her feet.
  • "Has he really gone?"
  • "Yes. He's gone this time."
  • "Was he--was he violent?"
  • "A little," said Sam. "A little. But I calmed him down." He looked at
  • her gravely. "Thank God I was in time!"
  • "Oh, you are the bravest man in the world!" cried Billie, and, burying
  • her face in her hands, burst into tears.
  • "There, there!" said Sam. "There, there! Come, come! It's all right now!
  • There, there, there!"
  • He knelt down beside her. He slipped one arm round her waist. He patted
  • her hands.
  • "There, there, there!" he said.
  • I have tried to draw Samuel Marlowe so that he will live on the printed
  • page. I have endeavoured to delineate his character so that it will be
  • as an open book. And, if I have succeeded in my task, the reader will by
  • now have become aware that he was a young man with the gall of an Army
  • mule. His conscience, if he had ever had one, had become atrophied
  • through long disuse. He had given this sensitive girl the worst fright
  • she had had since a mouse had got into her bedroom at school. He had
  • caused Jno. Peters to totter off to the Rupert Street range making low,
  • bleating noises. And did he care? No! All he cared about was the fact
  • that he had erased for ever from Billie's mind that undignified picture
  • of himself as he had appeared on the boat, and substituted another which
  • showed him brave, resourceful, gallant. All he cared about was the fact
  • that Billie, so cold ten minutes before, had just allowed him to kiss
  • her for the forty-second time. If you had asked him, he would have said
  • that he had acted for the best, and that out of evil cometh good, or
  • some sickening thing like that. That was the sort of man Samuel Marlowe
  • was.
  • His face was very close to Billie's, who had cheered up wonderfully by
  • this time, and he was whispering his degraded words of endearment into
  • her ear, when there was a sort of explosion in the doorway.
  • "Great Godfrey!" exclaimed Mr. Rufus Bennett, gazing on the scene from
  • this point of vantage and mopping with a large handkerchief a scarlet
  • face, which, as the result of climbing three flights of stairs, had
  • become slightly soluble. "Great Heavens above! Number four!"
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • STRONG REMARKS BY A FATHER
  • Mr. Bennett advanced shakily into the room, and supported himself with
  • one hand on the desk, while with the other he still plied the
  • handkerchief on his over-heated face. Much had occurred to disturb him
  • this morning. On top of a broken night he had had an affecting
  • reconciliation scene with Mr. Mortimer, at the conclusion of which he
  • had decided to take the first train to London in the hope of
  • intercepting Billie before she reached Sir Mallaby's office on her
  • mission of war. The local train-service kept such indecently early hours
  • that he had been compelled to bolt his breakfast, and, in the absence of
  • Billie, the only member of the household who knew how to drive the car,
  • to walk to the station, a distance of nearly two miles, the last hundred
  • yards of which he had covered at a rapid gallop, under the erroneous
  • impression that an express whose smoke he had seen in the distance was
  • the train he had come to catch. Arrived on the platform, he had had a
  • trying wait, followed by a slow journey to Waterloo. The cab which he
  • had taken at Waterloo had kept him in a lively state of apprehension all
  • the way to the Savoy, owing to an apparent desire to climb over
  • motor-omnibuses when it could not get round them. At the Savoy he found
  • that Billie had already left, which had involved another voyage through
  • the London traffic under the auspices of a driver who appeared to be
  • either blind or desirous of committing suicide. He had three flights of
  • stairs to negotiate. And, finally, arriving at the office, he had found
  • his daughter in the circumstances already described.
  • "Why, father!" said Billie. "I didn't expect you."
  • As an explanation of her behaviour this might, no doubt, have been
  • considered sufficient, but as an excuse for it Mr. Bennett thought it
  • inadequate and would have said so, had he had enough breath. This
  • physical limitation caused him to remain speechless and to do the best
  • he could in the way of stern fatherly reproof by puffing like a seal
  • after a long dive in search of fish.
  • Having done this, he became aware that Sam Marlowe was moving towards
  • him with outstretched hand. It took a lot to disconcert Sam, and he was
  • the calmest person present. He gave evidence of this in a neat speech.
  • He did not in so many words congratulate Mr. Bennett on the piece of
  • luck which had befallen him, but he tried to make him understand by his
  • manner that he was distinctly to be envied as the prospective
  • father-in-law of such a one as himself.
  • "I am delighted to see you, Mr. Bennett," said Sam. "You could not have
  • come at a more fortunate moment. You see for yourself how things are.
  • There is no need for a long explanation. You came to find a daughter,
  • Mr. Bennett, and you have found a son!"
  • And he would like to see the man, thought Sam, who could have put it
  • more cleverly and pleasantly and tactfully than that.
  • "What are you talking about?" said Mr. Bennett, recovering breath. "I
  • haven't got a son."
  • "I will be a son to you! I will be the prop of your declining years...."
  • "What the devil do you mean, my declining years?" demanded Mr. Bennett
  • with asperity.
  • "He means when they do decline, father dear," said Billie.
  • "Of course, of course," said Sam. "When they do decline. Not till then,
  • of course. I wouldn't dream of it. But, once they do decline, count on
  • me! And I should like to say for my part," he went on handsomely, "what
  • an honour I think it, to become the son-in-law of a man like Mr.
  • Bennett. Bennett of New York!" he added spaciously, not so much because
  • he knew what he meant, for he would have been the first to admit that he
  • did not, but because it sounded well.
  • "Oh!" said Mr. Bennett. "You do, do you?"
  • Mr. Bennett sat down. He put away his handkerchief, which had certainly
  • earned a rest. Then he fastened a baleful stare upon his
  • newly-discovered son. It was not the sort of look a proud and happy
  • father-in-law-to-be ought to have directed at a prospective relative. It
  • was not, as a matter of fact, the sort of look which anyone ought to
  • have directed at anybody, except possibly an exceptionally prudish judge
  • at a criminal in the dock, convicted of a more than usually atrocious
  • murder. Billie, not being in the actual line of fire, only caught the
  • tail end of it, but it was enough to create a misgiving.
  • "Oh, father! You aren't angry!"
  • "Angry!"
  • "You _can't_ be angry!"
  • "Why can't I be angry?" declared Mr. Bennett, with that sense of injury
  • which comes to self-willed men when their whims are thwarted. "Why the
  • devil shouldn't I be angry? I _am_ angry! I come here and find you
  • like--like this, and you seem to expect me to throw my hat in the air
  • and give three rousing cheers! Of course I'm angry! You are engaged to
  • be married to an excellent young man of the highest character, one of
  • the finest young men I have ever known...."
  • "Oh, well!" said Sam, straightening his tie modestly. "It's awfully good
  • of you...."
  • "But that's all over, father."
  • "What's all over?"
  • "You told me yourself that you had broken off my engagement to Bream."
  • "Well--er--yes, I did," said Mr. Bennett, a little taken aback. "That
  • is--to a certain extent--so. But," he added, with restored firmness,
  • "it's on again!"
  • "But I don't want to marry Bream!"
  • "Naturally!" said Sam. "Naturally! Quite out of the question. In a few
  • days we'll all be roaring with laughter at the very idea."
  • "It doesn't matter what you want! A girl who gets engaged to a dozen men
  • in three weeks...."
  • "It wasn't a dozen!"
  • "Well, four--five--six--you can't expect me not to lose count.... I say
  • a girl who does that does not know what she wants, and older and more
  • prudent heads must decide for her. You are going to marry Bream
  • Mortimer!"
  • "All wrong! All wrong!" said Sam, with a reproving shake of the head.
  • "All wrong! She's going to marry me."
  • Mr. Bennett scorched him with a look compared with which his earlier
  • effort had been a loving glance.
  • "Wilhelmina," he said, "go into the outer office."
  • "But, father, Sam saved my life!"
  • "Go into the outer office and wait for me there."
  • "There was a lunatic in here...."
  • "There will be another if you don't go."
  • "He had a pistol."
  • "Go into the outer office!"
  • "I shall always love you, Sam!" said Billie, pausing mutinously at the
  • door.
  • "I shall always love _you_!" said Sam cordially.
  • "Nobody can keep us apart!"
  • "They're wasting their time, trying."
  • "You're the most wonderful man in the world!"
  • "There never was another girl like you!"
  • "Get _out_!" bellowed Mr. Bennett, on whose equanimity this love-scene,
  • which I think beautiful, was jarring profoundly. "Now, sir!" he said to
  • Sam, as the door closed.
  • "Yes, let's talk it over calmly," said Sam.
  • "I will not talk it over calmly!"
  • "Oh, come! You can do it if you try. In the first place, whatever put
  • this silly idea into your head about that sweet girl marrying Bream
  • Mortimer?"
  • "Bream Mortimer is the son of Henry Mortimer."
  • "I know," said Sam. "And, while it is no doubt unfair to hold that
  • against him, it's a point you can't afford to ignore. Henry Mortimer!
  • You and I have Henry Mortimer's number. We know what Henry Mortimer is
  • like! A man who spends his time thinking up ways of annoying you. You
  • can't seriously want to have the Mortimer family linked to you by
  • marriage."
  • "Henry Mortimer is my oldest friend."
  • "That makes it all the worse. Fancy a man who calls himself your friend
  • treating you like that!"
  • "The misunderstanding to which you allude has been completely smoothed
  • over. My relations with Mr. Mortimer are thoroughly cordial."
  • "Well, have it your own way. Personally, I wouldn't trust a man like
  • that. And, as for letting my daughter marry his son...!"
  • "I have decided once and for all...."
  • "If you'll take my advice, you will break the thing off."
  • "I will not take your advice."
  • "I wouldn't expect to charge you for it," explained Sam reassuringly. "I
  • give it you as a friend, not as a lawyer. Six-and-eightpence to others,
  • free to you."
  • "Will you understand that my daughter is going to marry Bream Mortimer?
  • What are you giggling about?"
  • "It sounds so silly. The idea of anyone marrying Bream Mortimer, I
  • mean."
  • "Let me tell you he is a thoroughly estimable young man."
  • "And there you put the whole thing in a nutshell. Your daughter is a
  • girl of spirit. She would hate to be tied for life to an estimable young
  • man."
  • "She will do as I tell her."
  • Sam regarded him sternly.
  • "Have you no regard for her happiness?"
  • "I am the best judge of what is best for her."
  • "If you ask me," said Sam candidly, "I think you're a rotten judge."
  • "I did not come here to be insulted!"
  • "I like that! You have been insulting me ever since you arrived. What
  • right have you to say that I'm not fit to marry your daughter?"
  • "I did not say that."
  • "You've implied it. And you've been looking at me as if I were a leper
  • or something the Pure Food Committee had condemned. Why? That's what I
  • ask you," said Sam, warming up. This he fancied, was the way Widgery
  • would have tackled a troublesome client. "Why? Answer me that!"
  • "I...."
  • Sam rapped sharply on the desk.
  • "Be careful, sir. Be very careful!" He knew that this was what lawyers
  • always said. Of course, there is a difference in position between a
  • miscreant whom you suspect of an attempt at perjury and the father of
  • the girl you love, whose consent to the match you wish to obtain, but
  • Sam was in no mood for these nice distinctions. He only knew that
  • lawyers told people to be very careful, so he told Mr. Bennett to be
  • very careful.
  • "What do you mean, be very careful?" said Mr. Bennett.
  • "I'm dashed if I know," said Sam frankly. The question struck him as a
  • mean attack. He wondered how Widgery would have met it. Probably by
  • smiling quietly and polishing his spectacles. Sam had no spectacles. He
  • endeavoured, however, to smile quietly.
  • "Don't laugh at me!" roared Mr. Bennett.
  • "I'm not laughing at you."
  • "You are!"
  • "I'm not! I'm smiling quietly."
  • "Well, don't then!" said Mr. Bennett. He glowered at his young
  • companion. "I don't know why I'm wasting my time, talking to you. The
  • position is clear to the meanest intelligence. I have no objection to
  • you personally...."
  • "Come, this is better!" said Sam.
  • "I don't know you well enough to have any objection to you or any
  • opinion of you at all. This is only the second time I have ever met you
  • in my life."
  • "Mark you," said Sam, "I think I am one of those fellows who grow on
  • people...."
  • "As far as I am concerned, you simply do not exist. You may be the
  • noblest character in London or you may be wanted by the police. I don't
  • know. And I don't care. It doesn't matter to me. You mean nothing in my
  • life. I don't know you."
  • "You must persevere," said Sam. "You must buckle to and get to know me.
  • Don't give the thing up in this half-hearted way. Everything has to have
  • a beginning. Stick to it, and in a week or two you will find yourself
  • knowing me quite well."
  • "I don't want to know you!"
  • "You say that now, but wait!"
  • "And thank goodness I have not got to!" exploded Mr. Bennett, ceasing to
  • be calm and reasonable with a suddenness which affected Sam much as
  • though half a pound of gunpowder had been touched off under his chair.
  • "For the little I have seen of you has been quite enough! Kindly
  • understand that my daughter is engaged to be married to another man, and
  • that I do not wish to see or hear anything of you again! I shall try to
  • forget your very existence, and I shall see to it that Wilhelmina does
  • the same! You're an impudent scoundrel, sir! An impudent scoundrel! I
  • don't like you! I don't wish to see you again! If you were the last man
  • in the world I wouldn't allow my daughter to marry you! If that is
  • quite clear, I will wish you good morning!"
  • Mr. Bennett thundered out of the room, and Sam, temporarily stunned by
  • the outburst, remained where he was, gaping. A few minutes later life
  • began to return to his palsied limbs. It occurred to him that Mr.
  • Bennett had forgotten to kiss him good-bye, and he went into the outer
  • office to tell him so. But the outer office was empty. Sam stood for a
  • moment in thought, then he returned to the inner office, and, picking up
  • a time-table, began to look out trains to the village of Windlehurst in
  • Hampshire, the nearest station to his aunt Adeline's charming old-world
  • house, Windles.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • DRAMA AT A COUNTRY HOUSE
  • As I read over the last few chapters of this narrative, I see that I
  • have been giving the reader rather too jumpy a time. To almost a painful
  • degree I have excited his pity and terror; and, though that is what
  • Aristotle says one ought to do, I feel that a little respite would not
  • be out of order. The reader can stand having his emotions tortured up to
  • a certain point; after that he wants to take it easy for a bit. It is
  • with pleasure, therefore, that I turn now to depict a quiet, peaceful
  • scene in domestic life. It won't last long--three minutes, perhaps, by a
  • good stop-watch--but that is not my fault. My task is to record facts as
  • they happened.
  • The morning sunlight fell pleasantly on the garden of Windles, turning
  • it into the green and amber Paradise which Nature had intended it to be.
  • A number of the local birds sang melodiously in the undergrowth at the
  • end of the lawn, while others, more energetic, hopped about the grass
  • in quest of worms. Bees, mercifully ignorant that, after they had worked
  • themselves to the bone gathering honey, the proceeds of their labour
  • would be collared and consumed by idle humans, buzzed industriously to
  • and fro and dived head foremost into flowers. Winged insects danced
  • sarabands in the sunshine. In a deck-chair under the cedar-tree Billie
  • Bennett, with a sketching-block on her knee, was engaged in drawing a
  • picture of the ruined castle. Beside her, curled up in a ball, lay her
  • Pekinese dog, Pinky-Boodles. Beside Pinky-Boodles slept Smith, the
  • bulldog. In the distant stable-yard, unseen but audible, a boy in
  • shirt-sleeves was washing the car and singing as much as a treacherous
  • memory would permit of a popular sentimental ballad.
  • You may think that was all. You may suppose that nothing could be added
  • to deepen the atmosphere of peace and content. Not so. At this moment,
  • Mr. Bennett emerged from the French windows of the drawing-room, clad in
  • white flannels and buckskin shoes, supplying just the finishing touch
  • that was needed.
  • Mr. Bennett crossed the lawn, and sat down beside his daughter. Smith,
  • the bulldog, raising a sleepy head, breathed heavily; but Mr. Bennett
  • did not quail. Since their last unfortunate meeting, relations of
  • distant, but solid, friendship had come to exist between pursuer and
  • pursued. Sceptical at first, Mr. Bennett had at length allowed himself
  • to be persuaded of the mildness of the animal's nature and the essential
  • purity of his motives; and now it was only when they encountered each
  • other unexpectedly round sharp corners that he ever betrayed the
  • slightest alarm. So now, while Smith slept on the grass, Mr. Bennett
  • reclined in the chair. It was the nearest thing modern civilisation has
  • seen to the lion lying down with the lamb.
  • "Sketching?" said Mr. Bennett.
  • "Yes," said Billie, for there were no secrets between this girl and her
  • father. At least, not many. She occasionally omitted to tell him some
  • such trifle as that she had met Samuel Marlowe on the previous morning
  • in a leafy lane, and intended to meet him again this afternoon, but
  • apart from that her mind was an open book.
  • "It's a great morning," said Mr. Bennett.
  • "So peaceful," said Billie.
  • "The eggs you get in the country in England," said Mr. Bennett, suddenly
  • striking a lyrical note, "are extraordinary. I had three for breakfast
  • this morning which defied competition, simply defied competition. They
  • were large and brown, and as fresh as new-mown hay!"
  • He mused for a while in a sort of ecstasy.
  • "And the hams!" he went on. "The ham I had for breakfast was what I call
  • ham! I don't know when I've had ham like that. I suppose it's something
  • they feed the pigs on!" he concluded, in soft meditation. And he gave a
  • little sigh. Life was very beautiful.
  • Silence fell, broken only by the snoring of Smith. Billie was thinking
  • of Sam, and of what Sam had said to her in the lane yesterday; of his
  • clean-cut face, and the look in his eyes--so vastly superior to any
  • look that ever came into the eyes of Bream Mortimer. She was telling
  • herself that her relations with Sam were an idyll; for, being young and
  • romantic, she enjoyed this freshet of surreptitious meetings which had
  • come to enliven the stream of her life. It was pleasant to go warily
  • into deep lanes where forbidden love lurked. She cast a swift
  • side-glance at her father--the unconscious ogre in her fairy-story. What
  • would he say if he knew? But Mr. Bennett did not know, and consequently
  • continued to meditate peacefully on ham.
  • They had sat like this for perhaps a minute--two happy mortals lulled by
  • the gentle beauty of the day--when from the window of the drawing-room
  • there stepped out a white-capped maid. And one may just as well say at
  • once--and have done with it--that this is the point where the quiet,
  • peaceful scene in domestic life terminates with a jerk, and pity and
  • terror resume work at the old stand.
  • The maid--her name, not that it matters, was Susan, and she was engaged
  • to be married, though the point is of no importance, to the second
  • assistant at Green's Grocery Stores in Windlehurst--approached Mr.
  • Bennett.
  • "Please, sir, a gentleman to see you."
  • "Eh?" said Mr. Bennett, torn from a dream of large pink slices edged
  • with bread-crumbed fat.
  • "A gentleman to see you, sir. In the drawing-room. He says you are
  • expecting him."
  • "Of course, yes. To be sure."
  • Mr. Bennett heaved himself out of the deck-chair. Beyond the French
  • windows he could see an indistinct form in a grey suit, and remembered
  • that this was the morning on which Sir Mallaby Marlowe's clerk--who was
  • taking those Schultz and Bowen papers for him to America--had written
  • that he would call. To-day was Friday; no doubt the man was sailing from
  • Southampton to-morrow.
  • He crossed the lawn, entered the drawing-room, and found Mr. Jno. Peters
  • with an expression on his ill-favoured face, which looked like one of
  • consternation, of uneasiness, even of alarm.
  • "Morning, Mr. Peters," said Mr. Bennett. "Very good of you to run down.
  • Take a seat, and I'll just go through the few notes I have made about
  • the matter."
  • "Mr. Bennett," exclaimed Jno. Peters. "May--may I speak?"
  • "What do you mean? Eh? What? Something to say? What is it?"
  • Mr. Peters cleared his throat awkwardly. He was feeling embarrassed at
  • the unpleasantness of the duty which he had to perform, but it was a
  • duty, and he did not intend to shrink from performing it. Ever since,
  • gazing appreciatively through the drawing-room windows at the charming
  • scene outside, he had caught sight of the unforgettable form of Billie,
  • seated in her chair with the sketching-block on her knee, he had
  • realised that he could not go away in silence, leaving Mr. Bennett
  • ignorant of what he was up against.
  • One almost inclines to fancy that there must have been a curse of some
  • kind on this house of Windles. Certainly everybody who entered it seemed
  • to leave his peace of mind behind him. Jno. Peters had been feeling
  • notably happy during his journey in the train from London, and the
  • subsequent walk from the station. The splendour of the morning had
  • soothed his nerves, and the faint wind that blew inshore from the sea
  • spoke to him hearteningly of adventure and romance. There was a jar of
  • pot-pourri on the drawing-room table, and he had derived considerable
  • pleasure from sniffing at it. In short, Jno. Peters was in the pink,
  • without a care in the world, until he had looked out of the window and
  • seen Billie.
  • "Mr. Bennett," he said, "I don't want to do anybody any harm, and, if
  • you know all about it, and she suits you, well and good; but I think it
  • is my duty to inform you that your stenographer is not quite right in
  • her head. I don't say she's dangerous, but she isn't compos. She
  • decidedly is _not_ compos, Mr. Bennett!"
  • Mr. Bennett stared at his well-wisher dumbly for a moment. The thought
  • crossed his mind that, if ever there was a case of the pot calling the
  • kettle black, this was it. His opinion of Jno. Peters' sanity went down
  • to zero.
  • "What are you talking about? My stenographer? What stenographer?"
  • It occurred to Mr. Peters that a man of the other's wealth and business
  • connections might well have a troupe of these useful females. He
  • particularised.
  • "I mean the young lady out in the garden there, to whom you were
  • dictating just now. The young lady with the writing-pad on her knee."
  • "What! What!" Mr. Bennett spluttered. "Do you know who that is?" he
  • exclaimed.
  • "Oh, yes, indeed!" said Jno. Peters. "I have only met her once, when she
  • came into our office to see Mr. Samuel, but her personality and
  • appearance stamped themselves so forcibly on my mind, that I know I am
  • not mistaken. I am sure it is my duty to tell you exactly what happened
  • when I was left alone with her in the office. We had hardly exchanged a
  • dozen words, Mr. Bennett, when--"--here Jno. Peters, modest to the core,
  • turned vividly pink--"when she told me--she told me that I was the only
  • man she loved!"
  • Mr. Bennett uttered a loud cry.
  • "Sweet spirits of nitre! What!"
  • "Those were her exact words."
  • "Five!" ejaculated Mr. Bennett, in a strangled voice. "By the great horn
  • spoon, number five!"
  • Mr. Peters could make nothing of this exclamation, and he was deterred
  • from seeking light by the sudden action of his host, who, bounding from
  • his seat with a vivacity of which one would not have believed him
  • capable, charged to the French window and emitted a bellow.
  • "Wilhelmina!"
  • Billie looked up from her sketching-block with a start. It seemed to her
  • that there was a note of anguish, of panic, in that voice. What her
  • father could have found in the drawing-room to be frightened at, she did
  • not know; but she dropped her block and hurried to his assistance.
  • "What is it, father?"
  • Mr. Bennett had retired within the room when she arrived; and, going in
  • after him, she perceived at once what had caused his alarm. There before
  • her, looking more sinister than ever, stood the lunatic Peters; and
  • there was an ominous bulge in his right coat-pocket which to her excited
  • senses betrayed the presence of the revolver. What Jno. Peters was, as a
  • matter of fact, carrying in his right coat-pocket was a bag of mixed
  • chocolates which he had purchased in Windlehurst. But Billie's eyes,
  • though bright, had no X-ray quality. Her simple creed was that, if Jno.
  • Peters bulged at any point, that bulge must be caused by a pistol. She
  • screamed, and backed against the wall. Her whole acquaintance with Jno
  • Peters had been one constant backing against walls.
  • "Don't shoot!" she cried, as Mr. Peters absent-mindedly dipped his hand
  • into the pocket of his coat. "Oh, please don't shoot!"
  • "What the deuce do you mean?" said Mr. Bennett irritably. "Wilhelmina,
  • this man says that you told him you loved him."
  • "Yes, I did, and I do. Really, really, Mr. Peters, I do!"
  • "Suffering cats!"
  • Mr. Bennett clutched at the back of his chair.
  • "But you've only met him once," he added almost pleadingly.
  • "You don't understand, father dear," said Billie desperately. "I'll
  • explain the whole thing later, when...."
  • "Father!" ejaculated Jno. Peters feebly. "Did you say 'father?'"
  • "Of course I said 'father!'"
  • "This is my daughter, Mr. Peters."
  • "My daughter! I mean, your daughter! Are--are you sure?"
  • "Of course I'm sure. Do you think I don't know my own daughter?"
  • "But she called me Mr. Peters!"
  • "Well, it's your name, isn't it?"
  • "But, if she--if this young lady is your daughter, how did she know my
  • name?"
  • The point seemed to strike Mr. Bennett. He turned to Billie.
  • "That's true. Tell me, Wilhelmina, when did you and Mr. Peters meet?"
  • "Why, in--in Sir Mallaby Marlowe's office, the morning you came there
  • and found me when I was talking to Sam."
  • Mr. Peters uttered a subdued gargling sound. He was finding this scene
  • oppressive to a not very robust intellect.
  • "He--Mr. Samuel--told me your name was Miss Milliken," he said dully.
  • Billie stared at him.
  • "Mr. Marlowe told you my name was Miss Milliken!" she repeated.
  • "He told me that you were the sister of the Miss Milliken who acts as
  • stenographer for the guv'--for Sir Mallaby, and sent me in to show you
  • my revolver, because he said you were interested and wanted to see it."
  • Billie uttered an exclamation. So did Mr. Bennett, who hated mysteries.
  • "What revolver? Which revolver? What's all this about a revolver? Have
  • you a revolver?"
  • "Why, yes, Mr. Bennett. It is packed now in my trunk, but usually I
  • carry it about with me everywhere in order to take a little practice at
  • the Rupert Street range. I bought it when Sir Mallaby told me he was
  • sending me to America, because I thought I ought to be prepared--because
  • of the Underworld, you know."
  • A cold gleam had come into Billie's eyes. Her face was pale and hard. If
  • Sam Marlowe--at that moment carolling blithely in his bedroom at the
  • Blue Boar in Windlehurst, washing his hands preparatory to descending to
  • the coffee-room for a bit of cold lunch--could have seen her, the song
  • would have frozen on his lips. Which, one might mention, as showing that
  • there is always a bright side, would have been much appreciated by the
  • travelling gentleman in the adjoining room, who had had a wild night
  • with some other travelling gentlemen, and was then nursing a rather
  • severe headache, separated from Sam's penetrating baritone only by the
  • thickness of a wooden wall.
  • Billie knew all. And, terrible though the fact is as an indictment of
  • the male sex, when a woman knows all, there is invariably trouble ahead
  • for some man. There was trouble ahead for Samuel Marlowe. Billie, now in
  • possession of the facts, had examined them and come to the conclusion
  • that Sam had played a practical joke on her, and she was a girl who
  • strongly disapproved of practical humour at her expense.
  • "That morning I met you at Sir Mallaby's office, Mr. Peters," she said
  • in a frosty voice, "Mr. Marlowe had just finished telling me a long and
  • convincing story to the effect that you were madly in love with a Miss
  • Milliken, who had jilted you, and that this had driven you off your
  • head, and that you spent your time going about with a pistol, trying to
  • shoot every red-haired woman you saw, because you thought they were Miss
  • Milliken. Naturally, when you came in and called me Miss Milliken, and
  • brandished a revolver, I was very frightened. I thought it would be
  • useless to tell you that I wasn't Miss Milliken, so I tried to persuade
  • you that I was and hadn't jilted you after all."
  • "Good gracious!" said Mr. Peters, vastly relieved; and yet--for always
  • there is bitter mixed with the sweet--a shade disappointed.
  • "Then--er--you don't love me after all?"
  • "No!" said Billie. "I am engaged to Bream Mortimer, and I love him and
  • nobody else in the world!"
  • The last portion of her observation was intended for the consumption of
  • Mr. Bennett, rather than that of Mr. Peters, and he consumed it
  • joyfully. He folded Billie in his ample embrace.
  • "I always thought you had a grain of sense hidden away somewhere," he
  • said, paying her a striking tribute. "I hope now that we've heard the
  • last of all this foolishness about that young hound Marlowe."
  • "You certainly have! I don't want ever to see him again! I hate him!"
  • "You couldn't do better, my dear," said Mr. Bennett, approvingly. "And
  • now run away. Mr. Peters and I have some business to discuss."
  • A quarter of an hour later, Webster, the valet, sunning himself in the
  • stable-yard, was aware of the daughter of his employer approaching him.
  • "Webster," said Billie. She was still pale. Her face was still hard, and
  • her eyes still gleamed coldly.
  • "Miss?" said Webster politely, throwing away the cigarette with which he
  • had been refreshing himself.
  • "Will you do something for me?"
  • "I should be more than delighted, miss."
  • Billie whisked into view an envelope which had been concealed in the
  • recesses of her dress.
  • "Do you know the country about here well, Webster?"
  • "Within a certain radius, not unintimately, miss. I have been for
  • several enjoyable rambles since the fine weather set in."
  • "Do you know the place where there is a road leading to Havant, and
  • another to Cosham? It's about a mile down...."
  • "I know the spot well, miss."
  • "Well, straight in front of you when you get to the sign-post there is a
  • little lane...."
  • "I know it, miss," said Webster, with a faint smile. Twice had he
  • escorted Miss Trimblett, Billie's maid, thither. "A delightfully
  • romantic spot. What with the overhanging trees, the wealth of
  • blackberry bushes, the varied wild-flowers...."
  • "Yes, never mind about the wild-flowers now. I want you after lunch, to
  • take this note to a gentleman you will find sitting on the gate at the
  • bottom of the lane...."
  • "Sitting on the gate, miss. Yes, miss."
  • "Or leaning against it. You can't mistake him. He is rather tall and ...
  • oh, well, there isn't likely to be anybody else there, so you can't make
  • a mistake. Give him this, will you?"
  • "Certainly, miss. Er--any message?"
  • "Any what?"
  • "Any verbal message, miss?"
  • "No, certainly not! You won't forget, will you, Webster?"
  • "On no account whatever, miss. Shall I wait for an answer?"
  • "There won't be any answer," said Billie, setting her teeth for an
  • instant. "Oh, Webster!"
  • "Miss?"
  • "I can rely on you to say nothing to anybody?"
  • "Most undoubtedly, miss. Most undoubtedly."
  • "Does anybody know anything about a feller named S. Marlowe?" inquired
  • Webster, entering the kitchen. "Don't all speak at once! S. Marlowe.
  • Ever heard of him?"
  • He paused for a reply, but nobody had any information to impart.
  • "Because there's something jolly well up! Our Miss B. is sending me with
  • notes for him to the bottom of lanes."
  • "And her engaged to young Mr. Mortimer!" said the scullery-maid,
  • shocked. "The way they go on. Chronic!" said the scullery-maid.
  • "Don't you go getting alarmed! And don't you," added Webster, "go
  • shoving your oar in when your social superiors are talking! I've had to
  • speak to you about that before. My remarks were addressed to Mrs.
  • Withers here."
  • He indicated the cook with a respectful gesture.
  • "Yes, here's the note, Mrs. Withers. Of course, if you had a steamy
  • kettle handy, in about half a moment we could ... but no, perhaps it's
  • wiser not to risk it. And, come to that, I don't need to unstick the
  • envelope to know what's inside here. It's the raspberry, ma'am, or I've
  • lost all my power to read the human female countenance. Very cold and
  • proud-looking she was! I don't know who this S. Marlowe is, but I do
  • know one thing; in this hand I hold the instrument that's going to give
  • it him in the neck, proper! Right in the neck, or my name isn't Montagu
  • Webster!"
  • "Well!" said Mrs. Withers, comfortably, pausing for a moment from her
  • labours. "Think of that!"
  • "The way I look at it," said Webster, "is that there's been some sort of
  • understanding between our Miss B. and this S. Marlowe, and she's thought
  • better of it and decided to stick to the man of her parent's choice.
  • She's chosen wealth and made up her mind to hand the humble suitor the
  • mitten. There was a rather similar situation in 'Cupid or Mammon,' that
  • Nosegay Novelette I was reading in the train coming down here, only that
  • ended different. For my part I'd be better pleased if our Miss B. would
  • let the cash go, and obey the dictates of her own heart; but these
  • modern girls are all alike! All out for the stuff, they are! Oh, well,
  • it's none of my affair," said Webster, stifling a not unmanly sigh. For
  • beneath that immaculate shirt-front there beat a warm heart. Montagu
  • Webster was a sentimentalist.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • WEBSTER, FRIEND IN NEED
  • At half-past two that afternoon, full of optimism and cold beef, gaily
  • unconscious that Webster with measured strides was approaching ever
  • nearer with the note that was to give it him in the neck, proper, Samuel
  • Marlowe dangled his feet from the top bar of the gate at the end of the
  • lane, and smoked contentedly as he waited for Billie to make her
  • appearance. He had had an excellent lunch; his pipe was drawing well,
  • and all Nature smiled. The breeze from the sea across the meadows
  • tickled pleasantly the back of his head, and sang a soothing song in the
  • long grass and ragged-robins at his feet. He was looking forward with a
  • roseate glow of anticipation to the moment when the white flutter of
  • Billie's dress would break the green of the foreground. How eagerly he
  • would jump from the gate! How lovingly he would....
  • The elegant figure of Webster interrupted his reverie. Sam had never
  • seen Webster before, and it was with no pleasure that he saw him now. He
  • had come to regard this lane as his own private property, and he
  • resented trespassers. He tucked his legs under him, and scowled at
  • Webster under the brim of his hat.
  • The valet advanced towards him with the air of an affable executioner
  • stepping daintily to the block.
  • "Mr. Marlowe, sir?" he inquired politely.
  • Sam was startled. He could making nothing of this.
  • "Eh? What?"
  • "Have I the pleasure of addressing Mr. S. Marlowe?"
  • "Yes, that's my name."
  • "Mine is Webster, sir. I am Mr. Bennett's personal gentleman's
  • gentleman. Miss Bennett entrusted me with this note to deliver to you,
  • sir."
  • Sam began to grasp the position. For some reason or other, the dear girl
  • had been prevented from coming this afternoon, and she had written to
  • explain and relieve his anxiety. It was like her. It was just the sweet,
  • thoughtful thing he would have expected her to do. His contentment with
  • the existing scheme of things returned. The sun shone out again, and he
  • found himself amiably disposed towards the messenger.
  • "Fine day," he said, as he took the note.
  • "Extremely, sir," said Webster, outwardly unemotional, inwardly full of
  • a grave pity.
  • It was plain to him that there had been no previous little rift to
  • prepare the young man for the cervical operation which awaited him, and
  • he edged a little nearer, in order to be handy to catch Sam if the shock
  • knocked him off the gate.
  • As it happened, it did not. Having read the opening words of the note,
  • Sam rocked violently; but his feet were twined about the lower bars and
  • this saved him from overbalancing. Webster stepped back, relieved.
  • The note fluttered to the ground. Webster, picking it up and handing it
  • back, was enabled to get a glimpse of the first two sentences. They
  • confirmed his suspicions. The note was hot stuff. Assuming that it
  • continued as it began, it was about the warmest thing of its kind that
  • pen had ever written. Webster had received one or two heated epistles
  • from the sex in his time--your man of gallantry can hardly hope to
  • escape these unpleasantnesses--but none had got off the mark quite so
  • swiftly, and with quite so much frigid violence as this.
  • "Thanks," said Sam mechanically.
  • "Not at all, sir. You are very welcome."
  • Sam resumed his reading. A cold perspiration broke out on his forehead.
  • His toes curled, and something seemed to be crawling down the small of
  • his back. His heart had moved from its proper place and was now beating
  • in his throat. He swallowed once or twice to remove the obstruction, but
  • without success. A kind of pall had descended on the landscape, blotting
  • out the sun.
  • Of all the rotten sensations in this world, the worst is the realisation
  • that a thousand-to-one chance has come off, and caused our wrong-doing
  • to be detected. There had seemed no possibility of that little ruse of
  • his being discovered, and yet here was Billie in full possession of the
  • facts. It almost made the thing worse that she did not say how she had
  • come into possession of them. This gave Sam that feeling of self-pity,
  • that sense of having been ill-used by Fate, which makes the bringing
  • home of crime so particularly poignant.
  • "Fine day!" he muttered. He had a sort of subconscious feeling that it
  • was imperative to keep engaging Webster in light conversation.
  • "Yes, sir. Weather still keeps up," agreed the valet suavely.
  • Sam frowned over the note. He felt injured. Sending a fellow notes
  • didn't give him a chance. If she had come in person and denounced him it
  • would not have been an agreeable experience, but at least it would have
  • been possible then to have pleaded and cajoled and--and all that sort of
  • thing. But what could he do now? It seemed to him that his only possible
  • course was to write a note in reply, begging her to see him. He explored
  • his pockets and found a pencil and a scrap of paper. For some moments he
  • scribbled desperately. Then he folded the note.
  • "Will you take this to Miss Bennett?" he said, holding it out.
  • Webster took the missive, because he wanted to read it later at his
  • leisure; but he shook his head.
  • "Useless, I fear, sir," he said gravely.
  • "What do you mean?"
  • "I am afraid it would effect little or nothing, sir, sending our Miss B.
  • notes. She is not in the proper frame of mind to appreciate them. I saw
  • her face when she handed me the letter you have just read, and I assure
  • you, sir, she is not in a malleable mood."
  • "You seem to know a lot about it!"
  • "I have studied the sex, sir," said Webster modestly.
  • "I mean, about my business, confound it! You seem to know all about it!"
  • "Why, yes, sir, I think I may say that I have grasped the position of
  • affairs. And, if you will permit me to say so, sir, you have my
  • respectful sympathy."
  • Dignity is a sensitive plant which nourishes only under the fairest
  • conditions. Sam's had perished in the bleak east wind of Billie's note.
  • In other circumstances he might have resented this intrusion of a
  • stranger into his most intimate concerns. His only emotion now, was one
  • of dull but distinct gratitude. The four winds of Heaven blew chilly
  • upon his raw and unprotected soul, and he wanted to wrap it up in a
  • mantle of sympathy, careless of the source from which he borrowed that
  • mantle. If Webster felt disposed, as he seemed to indicate, to comfort
  • him, let the thing go on. At that moment Sam would have accepted
  • condolences from a coal-heaver.
  • "I was reading a story--one of the Nosegay Novelettes; I do not know if
  • you are familiar with the series, sir?--in which much the same
  • situation occurred. It was entitled 'Cupid or Mammon.' The heroine, Lady
  • Blanche Trefusis, forced by her parents to wed a wealthy suitor,
  • despatches a note to her humble lover, informing him it cannot be. I
  • believe it often happens like that, sir."
  • "You're all wrong," said Sam. "It's not that at all."
  • "Indeed, sir? I supposed it was."
  • "Nothing like it! I--I----."
  • Sam's dignity, on its death-bed, made a last effort to assert itself.
  • "I don't know what it's got to do with you!"
  • "Precisely, sir!" said Webster, with dignity. "Just as you say! Good
  • afternoon, sir!"
  • He swayed gracefully, conveying a suggestion of departure without moving
  • his feet. The action was enough for Sam. Dignity gave an expiring
  • gurgle, and passed away, regretted by all.
  • "Don't go!" he cried.
  • The idea of being left alone in this infernal lane, without human
  • support, overpowered him. Moreover, Webster had personality. He exuded
  • it. Already Sam had begun to cling to him in spirit, and rely on his
  • support.
  • "Don't go!"
  • "Certainly not, if you do not wish it, sir."
  • Webster coughed gently, to show his appreciation of the delicate nature
  • of the conversation. He was consumed with curiosity, and his threatened
  • departure had been but a pretence. A team of horses could not have moved
  • Webster at that moment.
  • "Might I ask, then, what...?"
  • "There's been a misunderstanding," said Sam. "At least, there was, but
  • now there isn't, if you see what I mean."
  • "I fear I have not quite grasped your meaning, sir."
  • "Well, I--I--played a sort of--you might almost call it a sort of trick
  • on Miss Bennett. With the best motives, of course!"
  • "Of course, sir!"
  • "And she's found out! I don't know how she's found out, but she has! So
  • there you are!"
  • "Of what nature would the trick be, sir? A species of ruse, sir,--some
  • kind of innocent deception?"
  • "Well, it was like this."
  • It was a complicated story to tell, and Sam, a prey to conflicting
  • emotions, told it badly; but such was the almost superhuman intelligence
  • of Webster, that he succeeded in grasping the salient points. Indeed, he
  • said that it reminded him of something of much the same kind in the
  • Nosegay Novelette, "All for Her," where the hero, anxious to win the
  • esteem of the lady of his heart, had bribed a tramp to simulate an
  • attack upon her in a lonely road.
  • "The principle's the same," said Webster.
  • "Well, what did he do when she found out?"
  • "She did not find out, sir. All ended happily, and never had the
  • wedding-bells in the old village church rung out a blither peal than
  • they did at the subsequent union."
  • Sam was thoughtful.
  • "Bribed a tramp to attack her, did he?"
  • "Yes, sir. She had never thought much of him till that moment, sir. Very
  • cold and haughty she had been, his social status being considerably
  • inferior to her own. But, when she cried for help, and he dashed out
  • from behind a hedge, well, it made all the difference."
  • "I wonder where I could get a good tramp," said Sam, meditatively.
  • Webster shook his head.
  • "I really would hardly recommend such a procedure, sir."
  • "No, it would be difficult to make a tramp understand what you wanted."
  • Sam brightened.
  • "I've got it! _You_ pretend to attack her, and I'll...."
  • "I couldn't, sir! I couldn't, really! I should jeopardise my situation."
  • "Oh, come. Be a man!"
  • "No, sir, I fear not. There's a difference between handing in your
  • resignation--I was compelled to do that only recently, owing to a few
  • words I had with the guv'nor, though subsequently prevailed upon to
  • withdraw it--I say there's a difference between handing in your
  • resignation and being given the sack, and that's what would
  • happen--without a character, what's more, and lucky if it didn't mean a
  • prison cell! No, sir, I could not contemplate such a thing."
  • "Then I don't see that there's anything to be done," said Sam,
  • morosely.
  • "Oh, I shouldn't say that, sir," said Webster encouragingly. "It's
  • simply a matter of finding the way. The problem confronting us--you, I
  • should say...."
  • "Us," said Sam. "Most decidedly us."
  • "Thank you very much, sir. I would not have presumed, but if you say
  • so.... The problem confronting us, as I envisage it, resolves itself
  • into this. You have offended our Miss B. and she has expressed a
  • disinclination ever to see you again. How, then, is it possible, in
  • spite of her attitude, to recapture her esteem?"
  • "Exactly," said Sam.
  • "There are several methods which occur to one...."
  • "They don't occur to _me_!"
  • "Well, for example, you might rescue her from a burning building, as in
  • 'True As Steel'...."
  • "Set fire to the house, eh?" said Sam reflectively. "Yes, there might be
  • something in that."
  • "I would hardly advise such a thing," said Webster, a little
  • hastily--flattered at the readiness with which his disciple was taking
  • his advice, yet acutely alive to the fact that he slept at the top of
  • the house himself. "A little drastic, if I may say so. It might be
  • better to save her from drowning, as in 'The Earl's Secret.'"
  • "Ah, but where could she drown?"
  • "Well, there is a lake in the grounds...."
  • "Excellent!" said Sam. "Terrific! I knew I could rely on you. Say no
  • more! The whole thing's settled. You take her out rowing on the lake,
  • and upset the boat. I plunge in.... I suppose you can swim?"
  • "No, sir."
  • "Oh? Well, never mind. You'll manage somehow, I expect. Cling to the
  • upturned boat or something, I shouldn't wonder. There's always a way.
  • Yes, that's the plan. When is the earliest you could arrange this?"
  • "I fear such a course must be considered out of the question, sir. It
  • really wouldn't do."
  • "I can't see a flaw in it."
  • "Well, in the first place, it would certainly jeopardise my
  • situation...."
  • "Oh, hang your situation! You talk as if you were Prime Minister or
  • something. You can easily get another situation. A valuable man like
  • you," said Sam ingratiatingly.
  • "No, sir," said Webster firmly. "From boyhood up I've always had a
  • regular horror of the water. I can't so much as go paddling without an
  • uneasy feeling."
  • The image of Webster paddling was arresting enough to occupy Sam's
  • thoughts for a moment. It was an inspiring picture, and for an instant
  • uplifted his spirits. Then they fell again.
  • "Well, I don't see what there _is_ to be done," he said, gloomily. "It's
  • no good my making suggestions, if you have some frivolous objection to
  • all of them."
  • "My idea," said Webster, "would be something which did not involve my
  • own personal and active co-operation, sir. If it is all the same to
  • you, I should prefer to limit my assistance to advice and sympathy. I am
  • anxious to help, but I am a man of regular habits, which I do not wish
  • to disturb. Did you ever read 'Footpaths of Fate,' in the Nosegay
  • series, sir? I've only just remembered it, and it contains the most
  • helpful suggestion of the lot. There had been a misunderstanding between
  • the heroine and the hero--their names have slipped my mind, though I
  • fancy his was Cyril--and she had told him to hop it...."
  • "To what?"
  • "To leave her for ever, sir. And what do you think he did?"
  • "How the deuce do I know?"
  • "He kidnapped her little brother, sir, to whom she was devoted, kept him
  • hidden for a bit, and then returned him, and in her gratitude all was
  • forgotten and forgiven, and never...."
  • "I know. Never had the bells of the old village church...."
  • "Rung out a blither peal. Exactly, sir. Well, there, if you will allow
  • me to say so, you are, sir! You need seek no further for a plan of
  • action."
  • "Miss Bennett hasn't got a little brother."
  • "No, sir. But she has a dog, and is greatly attached to it."
  • Sam stared. From the expression on his face it was evident that Webster
  • imagined himself to have made a suggestion of exceptional intelligence.
  • It struck Sam as the silliest he had ever heard.
  • "You mean I ought to steal her dog?"
  • "Precisely, sir."
  • "But, good heavens! Have you seen that dog?"
  • "The one to which I allude is a small brown animal with a fluffy tail."
  • "Yes, and a bark like a steam-siren, and, in addition to that, about
  • eighty-five teeth, all sharper than razors. I couldn't get within ten
  • feet of that dog without its lifting the roof off, and, if I did, it
  • would chew me into small pieces."
  • "I had anticipated that difficulty, sir. In 'Footpaths of Fate' there
  • was a nurse who assisted the hero by drugging the child."
  • "By Jove!" said Sam, impressed.
  • "He rewarded her," said Webster, allowing his gaze to stray nonchalantly
  • over the countryside, "liberally, very liberally."
  • "If you mean that you expect me to reward you if you drug the dog," said
  • Sam, "don't worry. Let me bring this thing off, and you can have all
  • I've got, and my cuff-links as well. Come now, this is really beginning
  • to look like something. Speak to me more of this matter. Where do we go
  • from here?"
  • "I beg your pardon, sir?"
  • "I mean, what's the next step in the scheme? Oh, Lord!" Sam's face fell.
  • The light of hope died out of his eyes. "It's all off! It can't be
  • done! How could I possibly get into the house? I take it that the little
  • brute sleeps in the house?"
  • "That need constitute no obstacle, sir, no obstacle at all. The animal
  • sleeps in a basket in the hall.... Perhaps you are familiar with the
  • interior of the house, sir?"
  • "I haven't been inside it since I was at school. I'm Mr. Hignett's
  • cousin, you know."
  • "Indeed, sir? I wasn't aware. Mr. Hignett has the mumps, poor
  • gentleman."
  • "Has he?" said Sam, not particularly interested. "I used to stay with
  • him," he went on, "during the holidays sometimes, but I've practically
  • forgotten what the place is like inside. I remember the hall vaguely.
  • Fireplace at one side, one or two suits of armour standing about, a sort
  • of window-ledge near the front door...."
  • "Precisely, sir. It is close beside that window-ledge that the animal's
  • basket is situated. If I administer a slight soporific...."
  • "Yes, but you haven't explained yet how I am to get into the house in
  • the first place."
  • "Quite easily, sir. I can admit you through the drawing-room windows
  • while dinner is in progress."
  • "Fine!"
  • "You can then secrete yourself in the cupboard in the drawing-room.
  • Perhaps you recollect the cupboard to which I refer, sir?"
  • "No, I don't remember any cupboard. As a matter of fact, when I used to
  • stay at the house the drawing-room was barred. Mrs. Hignett wouldn't
  • let us inside it for fear we should smash her china. Is there a
  • cupboard?"
  • "Immediately behind the piano, sir. A nice, roomy cupboard. I was
  • glancing into it myself in a spirit of idle curiosity only the other
  • day. It contains nothing except a few knick-knacks on an upper shelf.
  • You could lock yourself in from the interior, and be quite comfortably
  • seated on the floor till the household retired to bed."
  • "When would that be?"
  • "They retire quite early, sir, as a rule. By half-past ten the coast is
  • generally clear. At that time I would suggest that I came down and
  • knocked on the cupboard door to notify you that all was well."
  • Sam was glowing with frank approval.
  • "You know, you're a master-mind!" he said, enthusiastically.
  • "You're very kind, sir!"
  • "One of the lads, by Jove!" said Sam. "And not the worst of them! I
  • don't want to flatter you, but there's a future for you in crime, if you
  • cared to go in for it."
  • "I am glad that you appreciate my poor efforts, sir. Then we will regard
  • the scheme as passed and approved?"
  • "I should say we would! It's a bird!"
  • "Very good, sir."
  • "I'll be round at about a quarter to eight. Will that be right?"
  • "Admirable, sir."
  • "And, I say, about that soporific.... Don't overdo it. Don't go killing
  • the little beast."
  • "Oh, no, sir."
  • "Well," said Sam, "you can't say it's not a temptation. And you know
  • what you Napoleons of the Underworld are!"
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • A CROWDED NIGHT
  • § 1
  • If there is one thing more than another which weighs upon the mind of a
  • story-teller as he chronicles the events which he has set out to
  • describe, it is the thought that the reader may be growing impatient
  • with him for straying from the main channel of his tale and devoting
  • himself to what are, after all, minor developments. This story, for
  • instance, opened with Mrs. Horace Hignett, the world-famous writer on
  • Theosophy, going over to America to begin a lecturing-tour; and no one
  • realises more keenly than I do that I have left Mrs. Hignett flat. I
  • have thrust that great thinker into the background and concentrated my
  • attention on the affairs of one who is both her mental and her moral
  • inferior, Samuel Marlowe. I seem at this point to see the reader--a
  • great brute of a fellow with beetling eyebrows and a jaw like the ram of
  • a battleship, the sort of fellow who is full of determination and will
  • stand no nonsense--rising to remark that he doesn't care what happened
  • to Samuel Marlowe and that what he wants to know is, how Mrs. Hignett
  • made out on her lecturing-tour. Did she go big in Buffalo? Did she have
  • 'em tearing up the seats in Schenectady? Was she a riot in Chicago and a
  • cyclone in St. Louis? Those are the points on which he desires
  • information, or give him his money back.
  • I cannot supply the information. And, before you condemn me, let me
  • hastily add that the fault is not mine but that of Mrs. Hignett herself.
  • The fact is, she never went to Buffalo. Schenectady saw nothing of her.
  • She did not get within a thousand miles of Chicago, nor did she
  • penetrate to St. Louis. For the very morning after her son Eustace
  • sailed for England in the liner "Atlantic," she happened to read in the
  • paper one of those abridged passenger-lists which the journals of New
  • York are in the habit of printing, and got a nasty shock when she saw
  • that, among those whose society Eustace would enjoy during the voyage,
  • was "Miss Wilhelmina Bennett, daughter of J. Rufus Bennett of Bennett,
  • Mandelbaum and Co.". And within five minutes of digesting this
  • information, she was at her desk writing out telegrams cancelling all
  • her engagements. Iron-souled as this woman was, her fingers trembled as
  • she wrote. She had a vision of Eustace and the daughter of J. Rufus
  • Bennett strolling together on moonlit decks, leaning over rails damp
  • with sea-spray and, in short, generally starting the whole trouble all
  • over again.
  • In the height of the tourist season it is not always possible for one
  • who wishes to leave America to spring on to the next boat. A long
  • morning's telephoning to the offices of the Cunard and the White Star
  • brought Mrs. Hignett the depressing information that it would be a full
  • week before she could sail for England. That meant that the inflammable
  • Eustace would have over two weeks to conduct an uninterrupted wooing,
  • and Mrs. Hignett's heart sank, till suddenly she remembered that so poor
  • a sailor as her son was not likely to have had leisure for any strolling
  • on the deck during the voyage on the "Atlantic."
  • Having realised this, she became calmer and went about her preparations
  • for departure with an easier mind. The danger was still great, but there
  • was a good chance that she might be in time to intervene. She wound up
  • her affairs in New York, and on the following Wednesday, boarded the
  • "Nuronia" bound for Southampton.
  • The "Nuronia" is one of the slowest of the Cunard boats. It was built at
  • a time when delirious crowds used to swoon on the dock if an ocean liner
  • broke the record by getting across in nine days. It rolled over to
  • Cherbourg, dallied at that picturesque port for some hours, then
  • sauntered across the Channel and strolled into Southampton Water in the
  • evening of the day on which Samuel Marlowe had sat in the lane plotting
  • with Webster, the valet. At almost the exact moment when Sam, sidling
  • through the windows of the drawing-room, slid into the cupboard behind
  • the piano, Mrs. Hignett was standing at the Customs barrier telling the
  • officials that she had nothing to declare.
  • Mrs. Hignett was a general who believed in forced marches. A lesser
  • woman might have taken the boat-train to London and proceeded to Windles
  • at her ease on the following afternoon. Mrs. Hignett was made of sterner
  • stuff. Having fortified herself with a late dinner, she hired a car and
  • set out on the cross-country journey. It was only when the car, a
  • genuine antique, had broken down three times in the first ten miles,
  • that she directed the driver to take her instead to the "Blue Boar" in
  • Windlehurst, where she arrived, tired but thankful to have reached it at
  • all, at about eleven o'clock.
  • At this point many, indeed most, women would have gone to bed; but the
  • familiar Hampshire air and the knowledge that half an hour's walking
  • would take her to her beloved home acted on Mrs. Hignett like a
  • restorative. One glimpse of Windles she felt that she must have before
  • she retired for the night, if only to assure herself that it was still
  • there. She had a cup of coffee and a sandwich brought to her by the
  • night-porter whom she had roused from sleep, for bedtime is early in
  • Windlehurst, and then informed him that she was going for a short walk
  • and would ring when she returned.
  • Her heart leaped joyfully as she turned in at the drive gates of her
  • home and felt the well-remembered gravel crunching under her feet. The
  • silhouette of the ruined castle against the summer sky gave her the
  • feeling which all returning wanderers know. And, when she stepped on to
  • the lawn and looked at the black bulk of the house, indistinct and
  • shadowy with its backing of trees, tears came into her eyes. She
  • experienced a rush of emotion which made her feel quite faint, and which
  • lasted until, on tiptoeing nearer to the house in order to gloat more
  • adequately upon it, she perceived that the French windows of the
  • drawing-room were standing ajar. Sam had left them like this in order to
  • facilitate departure, if a hurried departure should by any mischance be
  • rendered necessary, and drawn curtains had kept the household from
  • noticing the fact.
  • All the proprietor in Mrs. Hignett was roused. This, she felt
  • indignantly, was the sort of thing she had been afraid would happen the
  • moment her back was turned. Evidently laxity--one might almost say
  • anarchy--had set in directly she had removed the eye of authority. She
  • marched to the window and pushed it open. She had now completely
  • abandoned her kindly scheme of refraining from rousing the sleeping
  • house and spending the night at the inn. She stepped into the
  • drawing-room with the single-minded purpose of routing Eustace out of
  • his sleep and giving him a good talking-to for having failed to
  • maintain her own standard of efficiency among the domestic staff. If
  • there was one thing on which Mrs. Horace Hignett had always insisted it
  • was that every window in the house must be closed at lights-out.
  • She pushed the curtains apart with a rattle and, at the same moment,
  • from the direction of the door there came a low but distinct gasp which
  • made her resolute heart jump and flutter. It was too dark to see
  • anything distinctly, but, in the instant before it turned and fled, she
  • caught sight of a shadowy male figure, and knew that her worst fears had
  • been realised. The figure was too tall to be Eustace, and Eustace, she
  • knew, was the only man in the house. Male figures, therefore, that went
  • flitting about Windles, must be the figures of burglars.
  • Mrs. Hignett, bold woman though she was, stood for an instant
  • spell-bound, and for one moment of not unpardonable panic tried to tell
  • herself that she had been mistaken. Almost immediately, however, there
  • came from the direction of the hall a dull chunky sound as though
  • something soft had been kicked, followed by a low gurgle and the noise
  • of staggering feet. Unless he were dancing a _pas seul_ out of sheer
  • lightness of heart, the nocturnal visitor must have tripped over
  • something.
  • The latter theory was the correct one. Montagu Webster was a man who, at
  • many a subscription ball, had shaken a gifted dancing-pump, and nothing
  • in the proper circumstances pleased him better than to exercise the
  • skill which had become his as the result of twelve private lessons at
  • half-a-crown a visit; but he recognised the truth of the scriptural
  • adage that there is a time for dancing, and that this was not it. His
  • only desire when, stealing into the drawing-room he had been confronted
  • through the curtains by a female figure, was to get back to his bedroom
  • undetected. He supposed that one of the feminine members of the
  • house-party must have been taking a stroll in the grounds, and he did
  • not wish to stay and be compelled to make laborious explanations of his
  • presence there in the dark. He decided to postpone the knocking on the
  • cupboard door, which had been the signal arranged between himself and
  • Sam, until a more suitable occasion. In the meantime he bounded silently
  • out into the hall, and instantaneously tripped over the portly form of
  • Smith, the bulldog, who, roused from a light sleep to the knowledge that
  • something was going on, and being a dog who always liked to be in the
  • centre of the maelstrom of events, had waddled out to investigate.
  • By the time Mrs. Hignett had pulled herself together sufficiently to
  • feel brave enough to venture into the hall, Webster's presence of mind
  • and Smith's gregariousness had combined to restore that part of the
  • house to its normal nocturnal condition of emptiness. Webster's stagger
  • had carried him almost up to the green baize door leading to the
  • servants' staircase, and he proceeded to pass through it without
  • checking his momentum, closely followed by Smith who, now convinced that
  • interesting events were in progress which might possibly culminate in
  • cake, had abandoned the idea of sleep, and meant to see the thing
  • through. He gambolled in Webster's wake up the stairs and along the
  • passage leading to the latter's room, and only paused when the door was
  • brusquely shut in his face. Upon which he sat down to think the thing
  • over. He was in no hurry. The night was before him, promising, as far as
  • he could judge from the way it had opened, excellent entertainment.
  • Mrs. Hignett had listened fearfully to the uncouth noises from the hall.
  • The burglars--she had now discovered that there were at least two of
  • them--appeared to be actually romping. The situation had grown beyond
  • her handling. If this troupe of terpsichorean marauders was to be
  • dislodged she must have assistance. It was man's work. She made a brave
  • dash through the hall mercifully unmolested; found the stairs; raced up
  • them; and fell through the doorway of her son Eustace's bedroom like a
  • spent Marathon runner staggering past the winning-post.
  • § 2
  • At about the moment when Mrs. Hignett was crunching the gravel of the
  • drive, Eustace was lying in bed, listening to Jane Hubbard as she told
  • the story of how an alligator had once got into her tent while she was
  • camping on the banks of the Issawassi River in Central Africa. Ever
  • since he had become ill, it had been the large-hearted girl's kindly
  • practice to soothe him to rest with some such narrative from her
  • energetic past.
  • "And what happened then?" asked Eustace, breathlessly.
  • He had raised himself on one elbow in his bed. His eyes shone excitedly
  • from a face which was almost the exact shape of an Association football;
  • for he had reached the stage of mumps when the patient begins to swell
  • as though somebody were inflating him with a bicycle-pump.
  • "Oh, I jabbed him in the eye with a pair of nail-scissors, and he went
  • away!" said Jane Hubbard.
  • "You know, you're wonderful!" cried Eustace. "Simply wonderful!"
  • Jane Hubbard flushed a little beneath her tan. She loved his pretty
  • enthusiasm. He was so genuinely stirred by what were to her the merest
  • commonplaces of life.
  • "Why, if an alligator got into _my_ tent," said Eustace, "I simply
  • wouldn't know what to do! I should be nonplussed."
  • "Oh, it's just a knack," said Jane, carelessly. "You soon pick it up."
  • "Nail-scissors!"
  • "It ruined them, unfortunately. They were never any use again. For the
  • rest of the trip I had to manicure myself with a hunting-spear."
  • "You're a marvel!"
  • Eustace lay back in bed and gave himself up to meditation. He had
  • admired Jane Hubbard before, but the intimacy of the sick-room and the
  • stories which she had told him to relieve the tedium of his invalid
  • state had set the seal on his devotion. It has always been like this
  • since Othello wooed Desdemona. For three days Jane Hubbard had been
  • weaving her spell about Eustace Hignett, and now she monopolised his
  • entire horizon. She had spoken, like Othello, of antres vast and deserts
  • idle, rough quarries, rocks and hills whose heads touched heaven, and of
  • the cannibals that each other eat, the Anthropophagi, and men whose
  • heads do grow beneath their shoulders. This to hear would Eustace
  • Hignett seriously incline, and swore, in faith, 'twas strange, 'twas
  • passing strange, 'twas pitiful, 'twas wondrous pitiful. He loved her for
  • the dangers she had passed, and she loved him that he did pity them. In
  • fact, one would have said that it was all over except buying the
  • licence, had it not been for the fact that his very admiration served to
  • keep Eustace from pouring out his heart. It seemed incredible to him
  • that the queen of her sex, a girl who had chatted in terms of equality
  • with African head-hunters and who swatted alligators as though they were
  • flies, could ever lower herself to care for a man who looked like the
  • "after-taking" advertisement of a patent food.
  • But even those whom Nature has destined to be mates may misunderstand
  • each other, and Jane, who was as modest as she was brave, had come
  • recently to place a different interpretation on his silence. In the last
  • few days of the voyage she had quite made up her mind that Eustace
  • Hignett loved her and would shortly intimate as much in the usual
  • manner; but, since coming to Windles, she had begun to have doubts. She
  • was not blind to the fact that Billie Bennett was distinctly prettier
  • than herself and far more the type to which the ordinary man is
  • attracted. And, much as she loathed the weakness and despised herself
  • for yielding to it, she had become distinctly jealous of her. True,
  • Billie was officially engaged to Bream Mortimer, but she had had
  • experience of the brittleness of Miss Bennett's engagements, and she
  • could by no means regard Eustace as immune.
  • "Do you suppose they will be happy?" she asked.
  • "Eh? Who?" said Eustace, excusably puzzled, for they had only just
  • finished talking about alligators. But there had been a pause since his
  • last remark, and Jane's thoughts had flitted back to the subject that
  • usually occupied them.
  • "Billie and Bream Mortimer."
  • "Oh!" said Eustace. "Yes, I suppose so."
  • "She's a delightful girl."
  • "Yes," said Eustace without much animation.
  • "And, of course, it's nice their fathers being so keen on the match. It
  • doesn't often happen that way."
  • "No. People's people generally want people to marry people people don't
  • want to marry," said Eustace, clothing in words a profound truth which
  • from the earliest days of civilisation has deeply affected the youth of
  • every country.
  • "I suppose your mother has got somebody picked out for you to marry?"
  • said Jane casually.
  • "Mother doesn't want me to marry anybody," said Eustace with gloom. It
  • was another obstacle to his romance.
  • "What, never?"
  • "No."
  • "Why ever not?"
  • "As far as I can make out, if I marry, I get this house and mother has
  • to clear out. Silly business!"
  • "Well, you wouldn't let your mother stand in the way if you ever really
  • fell in love?" said Jane.
  • "It isn't so much a question of _letting_ her stand in the way. The
  • tough job would be preventing her. You've never met my mother!"
  • "No, I'm looking forward to it!"
  • "You're looking forward...!" Eustace eyed her with honest amazement.
  • "But what could your mother do? I mean, supposing you had made up your
  • mind to marry somebody."
  • "What could she do? Why, there isn't anything she wouldn't do. Why,
  • once...." Eustace broke off. The anecdote which he had been about to
  • tell contained information which, on reflection, he did not wish to
  • reveal.
  • "Once--...?" said Jane.
  • "Oh, well, I was just going to show you what mother is like. I--I was
  • going out to lunch with a man, and--and--" Eustace was not a ready
  • improvisator--"and she didn't want me to go, so she stole all my
  • trousers!"
  • Jane Hubbard started, as if, wandering through one of her favourite
  • jungles, she had perceived a snake in her path. She was thinking hard.
  • That story which Billie had told her on the boat about the man to whom
  • she had been engaged, whose mother had stolen his trousers on the
  • wedding morning ... it all came back to her with a topical significance
  • which it had never had before. It had lingered in her memory, as stories
  • will, but it had been a detached episode, having no personal meaning for
  • her. But now.... "She did that just to stop you going out to lunch with
  • a man?" she said slowly.
  • "Yes, rotten thing to do, wasn't it?"
  • Jane Hubbard moved to the foot of the bed, and her forceful gaze,
  • shooting across the intervening counterpane, pinned Eustace to the
  • pillow. She was in the mood which had caused spines in Somaliland to
  • curl like withered leaves.
  • "Were you ever engaged to Billie Bennett?" she demanded.
  • Eustace Hignett licked dry lips. His face looked like a hunted melon.
  • The flannel bandage, draped around it by loving hands, hardly supported
  • his sagging jaw.
  • "Why--er--"
  • "_Were_ you?" cried Jane, stamping an imperious foot. There was that in
  • her eye before which warriors of the lower Congo had become as chewed
  • blotting-paper. Eustace Hignett shrivelled in the blaze. He was filled
  • with an unendurable sense of guilt.
  • "Well--er--yes," he mumbled weakly.
  • Jane Hubbard buried her face in her hands and burst into tears. She
  • might know what to do when alligators started exploring her tent, but
  • she was a woman.
  • This sudden solution of steely strength into liquid weakness had on
  • Eustace Hignett the stunning effects which the absence of the last stair
  • has on the returning reveller creeping up to bed in the dark. It was as
  • though his spiritual foot had come down hard on empty space and caused
  • him to bite his tongue. Jane Hubbard had always been to him a rock of
  • support. And now the rock had melted away and left him wallowing in a
  • deep pool.
  • He wallowed gratefully. It had only needed this to brace him to the
  • point of declaring his love. His awe of this girl had momentarily
  • vanished. He felt strong and dashing. He scrambled down the bed and
  • peered over the foot of it at her huddled form.
  • "Have some barley-water," he urged. "Try a little barley-water."
  • It was all he had to offer her except the medicine which, by the
  • doctor's instructions, he took three times a day in a quarter of a glass
  • of water.
  • "Go away!" sobbed Jane Hubbard.
  • The unreasonableness of this struck Eustace.
  • "But I can't. I'm in bed. Where could I go?"
  • "I hate you!"
  • "Oh, don't say that!"
  • "You're still in love with her!"
  • "Nonsense! I never was in love with her."
  • "Then why were you going to marry her?"
  • "Oh, I don't know. It seemed a good idea at the time."
  • "Oh! Oh! Oh!"
  • Eustace bent a little further over the end of the bed and patted her
  • hair.
  • "Do have some barley-water," he said. "Just a sip!"
  • "You _are_ in love with her!" sobbed Jane.
  • "I'm _not_! I love _you_!"
  • "You don't!"
  • "Pardon _me_!" said Eustace firmly. "I've loved you ever since you gave
  • me that extraordinary drink with Worcester sauce in it on the boat."
  • "They why didn't you say so before?"
  • "I hadn't the nerve. You always seemed so--I don't know how to put it--I
  • always seemed such a worm. I was just trying to get the courage to
  • propose when I caught the mumps, and that seemed to me to finish it. No
  • girl could love a man with three times the proper amount of face."
  • "As if that could make any difference! What does your outside matter? I
  • have seen your inside!"
  • "I beg your pardon?"
  • "I mean...."
  • Eustace fondled her back hair.
  • "Jane! Queen of my soul! Do you really love me?"
  • "I've loved you ever since we met on the Subway." She raised a
  • tear-stained face. "If only I could be sure that you really loved me!"
  • "I can prove it!" said Eustace proudly. "You know how scared I am of my
  • mother. Well, for your sake I overcame my fear, and did something
  • which, if she ever found out about it, would make her sorer than a
  • sunburned neck! This house. She absolutely refused to let it to old
  • Bennett and old Mortimer. They kept after her about it, but she wouldn't
  • hear of it. Well, you told me on the boat that Wilhelmina Bennett had
  • invited you to spend the summer with her, and I knew that, if they
  • didn't come to Windles, they would take some other place, and that meant
  • I wouldn't see you. So I hunted up old Mortimer, and let it to him on
  • the quiet, without telling my mother anything about it!"
  • "Why, you darling angel child," cried Jane Hubbard joyfully. "Did you
  • really do that for my sake? Now I know you love me!"
  • "Of course, if mother ever got to hear of it...!"
  • Jane Hubbard pushed him gently into the nest of bedclothes, and tucked
  • him in with strong, calm hands. She was a very different person from the
  • girl who so short a while before had sobbed on the carpet. Love is a
  • wonderful thing.
  • "You mustn't excite yourself," she said. "You'll be getting a
  • temperature. Lie down and try to get to sleep." She kissed his bulbous
  • face. "You have made me so happy, Eustace darling."
  • "That's good," said Eustace cordially. "But it's going to be an awful
  • jar for mother!"
  • "Don't you worry about that. I'll break the news to your mother. I'm
  • sure she will be quite reasonable about it."
  • Eustace opened his mouth to speak, then closed it again.
  • "Lie back quite comfortably, and don't worry," said Jane Hubbard. "I'm
  • going to my room to get a book to read you to sleep. I shan't be five
  • minutes. And forget about your mother. I'll look after her."
  • Eustace closed his eyes. After all, this girl had fought lions, tigers,
  • pumas, cannibals, and alligators in her time with a good deal of
  • success. There might be a sporting chance of victory for her when she
  • moved a step up in the animal kingdom and tackled his mother. He was not
  • unduly optimistic, for he thought she was going out of her class; but he
  • felt faintly hopeful. He allowed himself to drift into pleasant
  • meditation.
  • There was a scrambling sound outside the door. The handle turned.
  • "Hullo! Back already?" said Eustace, opening his eyes.
  • The next moment he opened them wider. His mouth gaped slowly like a hole
  • in a sliding cliff. Mrs. Horace Hignett was standing at his bedside.
  • § 3
  • In the moment which elapsed before either of the two could calm their
  • agitated brains to speech, Eustace became aware, as never before, of the
  • truth of that well-known line--"Peace, perfect peace, with loved ones
  • far away." There was certainly little hope of peace with loved ones in
  • his bedroom. Dully, he realised that in a few minutes Jane Hubbard
  • would be returning with her book, but his imagination refused to
  • envisage the scene which would then occur.
  • "Eustace!"
  • Mrs. Hignett gasped, hand on heart.
  • "Eustace!" For the first time Mrs. Hignett seemed to become aware that
  • it was a changed face that confronted hers. "Good gracious! How stout
  • you've grown!"
  • "It's mumps."
  • "Mumps!"
  • "Yes, I've got mumps."
  • Mrs. Hignett's mind was too fully occupied with other matters to allow
  • her to dwell on this subject.
  • "Eustace, there are men in the house!"
  • This fact was just what Eustace had been wondering how to break to her.
  • "I know," he said uneasily.
  • "You know!" Mrs. Hignett stared. "Did you hear them?"
  • "Hear them?" said Eustace, puzzled.
  • "The drawing-room window was left open, and there are two burglars in
  • the hall!"
  • "Oh, I say, no! That's rather rotten!" said Eustace.
  • "I saw them and heard them! I--oh!" Mrs. Hignett's sentence trailed off
  • into a suppressed shriek, as the door opened and Jane Hubbard came in.
  • Jane Hubbard was a girl who by nature and training was well adapted to
  • bear shocks. Her guiding motto in life was that helpful line of
  • Horace--_Aequam memento rebus in arduis servare mentem_. (For the
  • benefit of those who have not, like myself, enjoyed an expensive
  • classical education,--memento--Take my
  • tip--servare--preserve--aequam--an unruffled--mentem--mind--rebus in
  • arduis--in every crisis). She had only been out of the room a few
  • minutes, and in that brief period a middle-aged lady of commanding
  • aspect had apparently come up through a trap. It would have been enough
  • to upset most girls, but Jane Hubbard bore it calmly. All through her
  • vivid life her bedroom had been a sort of cosy corner for murderers,
  • alligators, tarantulas, scorpions, and every variety of snake, so she
  • accepted the middle-aged lady without comment.
  • "Good evening," she said placidly.
  • Mrs. Hignett, having rallied from her moment of weakness, glared at the
  • new arrival dumbly. She could not place Jane. From the airy way in which
  • she had strolled into the room, she appeared to be some sort of a nurse;
  • but she wore no nurse's uniform.
  • "Who are you?" she asked stiffly.
  • "Who are _you_?" asked Jane.
  • "I," said Mrs. Hignett portentously, "am the owner of this house, and I
  • should be glad to know what you are doing in it. I am Mrs. Horace
  • Hignett."
  • A charming smile spread itself over Jane's finely-cut face.
  • "I'm so glad to meet you," she said. "I have heard so much about you."
  • "Indeed?" said Mrs. Hignett coldly. "And now I should like to hear a
  • little about you."
  • "I've read all your books," said Jane. "I think they're wonderful."
  • In spite of herself, in spite of a feeling that this young woman was
  • straying from the point, Mrs. Hignett could not check a slight influx of
  • amiability. She was an authoress who received a good deal of incense
  • from admirers, but she could always do with a bit more. Besides, most of
  • the incense came by post. Living a quiet and retired life in the
  • country, it was rarely that she got it handed to her face to face. She
  • melted quite perceptibly. She did not cease to look like a basilisk, but
  • she began to look like a basilisk who has had a good lunch.
  • "My favourite," said Jane, who for a week had been sitting daily in a
  • chair in the drawing-room adjoining the table on which the authoress's
  • complete works were assembled, "is 'The Spreading Light.' I _do_ like
  • 'The Spreading Light!'"
  • "It was written some years ago," said Mrs. Hignett with something
  • approaching cordiality, "and I have since revised some of the views I
  • state in it, but I still consider it quite a good text-book."
  • "Of course, I can see that 'What of the Morrow?' is more profound," said
  • Jane. "But I read 'The Spreading Light' first, and of course that makes
  • a difference."
  • "I can quite see that it would," agreed Mrs. Hignett. "One's first step
  • across the threshold of a new mind, one's first glimpse...."
  • "Yes, it makes you feel...."
  • "Like some watcher of the skies," said Mrs. Hignett, "when a new planet
  • swims into his ken, or like...."
  • "Yes, doesn't it!" said Jane.
  • Eustace, who had been listening to the conversation with every muscle
  • tense, in much the same mental attitude as that of a peaceful citizen in
  • a Wild West Saloon who holds himself in readiness to dive under a table
  • directly the shooting begins, began to relax. What he had shrinkingly
  • anticipated would be the biggest thing since the Dempsey-Carpentier
  • fight seemed to be turning into a pleasant social and literary evening
  • not unlike what he imagined a meeting of old Girton students must be.
  • For the first time since his mother had come into the room he indulged
  • in the luxury of a deep breath.
  • "But what are you doing here?" asked Mrs. Hignett, returning almost
  • reluctantly to the main issue.
  • Eustace perceived that he had breathed too soon. In an unobtrusive way
  • he subsided into the bed and softly pulled the sheets over his head,
  • following the excellent tactics of the great Duke of Wellington in his
  • Peninsular campaign. "When in doubt," the Duke used to say, "retire and
  • dig yourself in."
  • "I'm nursing dear Eustace," said Jane.
  • Mrs. Hignett quivered, and cast an eye on the hump in the bedclothes
  • which represented dear Eustace. A cold fear had come upon her.
  • "'Dear Eustace!'" she repeated mechanically.
  • "We're engaged," said Jane.
  • "Engaged! Eustace, is this true?"
  • "Yes," said a muffled voice from the interior of the bed.
  • "And poor Eustace is so worried," continued Jane, "about the house." She
  • went on quickly. "He doesn't want to deprive you of it, because he knows
  • what it means to you. So he is hoping--we are both hoping--that you will
  • accept it as a present when we are married. We really shan't want it,
  • you know. We are going to live in London. So you will take it, won't
  • you--to please us?"
  • We all of us, even the greatest of us, have our moments of weakness.
  • Only a short while back, in this very room, we have seen Jane Hubbard,
  • that indomitable girl, sobbing brokenly on the carpet. Let us then not
  • express any surprise at the sudden collapse of one of the world's
  • greatest female thinkers. As the meaning of this speech smote on Mrs.
  • Horace Hignett's understanding, she sank weeping into a chair. The
  • ever-present fear that had haunted her had been exorcised. Windles was
  • hers in perpetuity. The relief was too great. She sat in her chair and
  • gulped; and Eustace, greatly encouraged, emerged slowly from the
  • bedclothes like a worm after a thunderstorm.
  • How long this poignant scene would have lasted, one cannot say. It is a
  • pity that it was cut short, for I should have liked to dwell upon it.
  • But at this moment, from the regions downstairs, there suddenly burst
  • upon the silent night such a whirlwind of sound as effectually
  • dissipated the tense emotion in the room. Somebody appeared to have
  • touched off the orchestrion in the drawing-room, and that willing
  • instrument had begun again in the middle of a bar at the point where
  • Jane Hubbard had switched it off four afternoons ago. Its wailing lament
  • for the passing of Summer filled the whole house.
  • "That's too bad!" said Jane, a little annoyed. "At this time of night!"
  • "It's the burglars!" quavered Mrs. Hignett. In the stress of recent
  • events she had completely forgotten the existence of those enemies of
  • Society. "They were dancing in the hall when I arrived, and now they're
  • playing the orchestrion!"
  • "Light-hearted chaps!" said Eustace, admiring the sang-froid of the
  • criminal world. "Full of spirits!"
  • "This won't do," said Jane Hubbard, shaking her head. "We can't have
  • this sort of thing. I'll go and fetch my gun."
  • "They'll murder you, dear!" panted Mrs. Hignett, clinging to her arm.
  • Jane Hubbard laughed.
  • "Murder _me_!" she said amusedly. "I'd like to catch them at it!"
  • Mrs. Hignett stood staring at the door as Jane closed it softly behind
  • her.
  • "Eustace," she said solemnly, "that is a wonderful girl!"
  • "Yes! She once killed a panther--or a puma, I forget which--with a
  • hat-pin!" said Eustace with enthusiasm.
  • "I could wish you no better wife!" said Mrs. Hignett.
  • She broke off with a sharp wail. Out in the passage something like a
  • battery of artillery had roared.
  • The door opened and Jane Hubbard appeared, slipping a fresh cartridge
  • into the elephant-gun.
  • "One of them was popping about outside here," she announced. "I took a
  • shot at him, but I'm afraid I missed. The visibility was bad. At any
  • rate he went away."
  • In this last statement she was perfectly accurate. Bream Mortimer, who
  • had been aroused by the orchestrion and who had come out to see what was
  • the matter, had gone away at the rate of fifty miles an hour. He had
  • been creeping down the passage when he found himself suddenly confronted
  • by a dim figure which, without a word, had attempted to slay him with an
  • enormous gun. The shot had whistled past his ears and gone singing down
  • the corridor. This was enough for Bream. He had returned to his room in
  • three strides, and was now under the bed. The burglars might take
  • everything in the house and welcome, so that they did not molest his
  • privacy. That was the way Bream looked at it. And very sensible of him,
  • too, I consider.
  • "We'd better go downstairs," said Jane. "Bring the candle. Not you,
  • Eustace darling. You stay where you are or you may catch a chill. Don't
  • stir out of bed!"
  • "I won't," said Eustace obediently.
  • § 4
  • Of all the leisured pursuits, there are few less attractive to the
  • thinking man than sitting in a dark cupboard waiting for a house-party
  • to go to bed; and Sam, who had established himself in the one behind the
  • piano at a quarter to eight, soon began to feel as if he had been there
  • for an eternity. He could dimly remember a previous existence in which
  • he had not been sitting in his present position, but it seemed so long
  • ago that it was shadowy and unreal to him. The ordeal of spending the
  • evening in this retreat had not appeared formidable when he had
  • contemplated it that afternoon in the lane; but, now that he was
  • actually undergoing it, it was extraordinary how many disadvantages it
  • had.
  • Cupboards, as a class, are badly ventilated, and this one seemed to
  • contain no air at all; and the warmth of the night, combined with the
  • cupboard's natural stuffiness, had soon begun to reduce Sam to a
  • condition of pulp. He seemed to himself to be sagging like an ice-cream
  • in front of a fire. The darkness, too, weighed upon him. He was
  • abominably thirsty. Also he wanted to smoke. In addition to this, the
  • small of his back tickled, and he more than suspected the cupboard of
  • harbouring mice. Not once or twice but many hundred times he wished that
  • the ingenious Webster had thought of something simpler.
  • His was a position which would just have suited one of those Indian
  • mystics who sit perfectly still for twenty years, contemplating the
  • Infinite, but it reduced Sam to an almost imbecile state of boredom. He
  • tried counting sheep. He tried going over his past life in his mind from
  • the earliest moment he could recollect, and thought he had never
  • encountered a duller series of episodes. He found a temporary solace by
  • playing a succession of mental golf-games over all the courses he could
  • remember, and he was just teeing up for the sixteenth at Muirfield,
  • after playing Hoylake, St. Andrew's, Westward Ho, Hanger Hill,
  • Mid-Surrey, Walton Heath, and Sandwich, when the light ceased to shine
  • through the crack under the door, and he awoke with a sense of dull
  • incredulity to the realisation that the occupants of the drawing-room
  • had called it a day and that his vigil was over.
  • But was it? Once more alert, Sam became cautious. True, the light seemed
  • to be off, but did that mean anything in a country-house, where people
  • had the habit of going and strolling about the garden to all hours?
  • Probably they were still popping about all over the place. At any rate,
  • it was not worth risking coming out of his lair. He remembered that
  • Webster had promised to come and knock an all-clear signal on the door.
  • It would be safer to wait for that.
  • But the moments went by, and there was no knock. Sam began to grow
  • impatient. The last few minutes of waiting in a cupboard are always the
  • hardest. Time seemed to stretch out again interminably. Once he thought
  • he heard footsteps but they led to nothing. Eventually, having strained
  • his ears and finding everything still, he decided to take a chance. He
  • fished in his pocket for the key, cautiously unlocked the door, opened
  • it by slow inches, and peered out.
  • The room was in blackness. The house was still. All was well. With the
  • feeling of a life-prisoner emerging from the Bastille, he began to crawl
  • stiffly forward; and it was just then that the first of the disturbing
  • events occurred which were to make this night memorable to him.
  • Something like a rattlesnake suddenly went off with a whirr, and his
  • head, jerking up, collided with the piano. It was only the cuckoo-clock,
  • which now, having cleared its throat as was its custom before striking,
  • proceeded to cuck eleven times in rapid succession before subsiding with
  • another rattle; but to Sam it sounded like the end of the world.
  • He sat in the darkness, massaging his bruised skull. His hours of
  • imprisonment in the cupboard had had a bad effect on his nervous system,
  • and he vacillated between tears of weakness and a militant desire to get
  • at the cuckoo-clock with a hatchet. He felt that it had done it on
  • purpose and was now chuckling to itself in fancied security. For quite a
  • minute he raged silently, and any cuckoo-clock which had strayed within
  • his reach would have had a bad time of it. Then his attention was
  • diverted.
  • So concentrated was Sam on his private vendetta with the clock that no
  • ordinary happening would have had the power to distract him. What
  • occurred now was by no means ordinary, and it distracted him like an
  • electric shock. As he sat on the floor, passing a tender hand over the
  • egg-shaped bump which had already begun to manifest itself beneath his
  • hair, something cold and wet touched his face, and paralysed him so
  • completely both physically and mentally that he did not move a muscle
  • but just congealed where he sat into a solid block of ice. He felt
  • vaguely that this was the end. His heart had stopped beating and he
  • simply could not imagine it ever starting again, and, if your heart
  • refuses to beat, what hope is there for you?
  • At this moment something heavy and solid struck him squarely in the
  • chest, rolling him over. Something gurgled asthmatically in the
  • darkness. Something began to lick his eyes, ears, and chin in a sort of
  • ecstasy; and, clutching out, he found his arms full of totally
  • unexpected bulldog.
  • "Get out!" whispered Sam tensely, recovering his faculties with a jerk.
  • "Go away!"
  • Smith took the opportunity of Sam's lips having opened to lick the roof
  • of his mouth. Smith's attitude in the matter was that Providence in its
  • all-seeing wisdom had sent him a human being at a moment when he had
  • reluctantly been compelled to reconcile himself to a total absence of
  • such indispensable adjuncts to a good time. He had just trotted
  • downstairs in rather a disconsolate frame of mind after waiting with no
  • result in front of Webster's bedroom door, and it was a real treat to
  • him to meet a man, especially one seated in such a jolly and sociable
  • manner on the floor. He welcomed Sam like a long-lost friend.
  • Between Smith and the humans who provided him with dog-biscuits and
  • occasionally with sweet cakes there had always existed a state of
  • misunderstanding which no words could remove. The position of the humans
  • was quite clear; they had elected Smith to his present position on a
  • straight watch-dog ticket. They expected him to be one of those dogs who
  • rouse the house and save the spoons. They looked to him to pin burglars
  • by the leg and hold on till the police arrived. Smith simply could not
  • grasp such an attitude of mind. He regarded Windles not as a private
  • house but as a social club, and was utterly unable to see any difference
  • between the human beings he knew and the strangers who dropped in for a
  • late chat after the place was locked up. He had no intention of biting
  • Sam. The idea never entered his head. At the present moment what he felt
  • about Sam was that he was one of the best fellows he had ever met and
  • that he loved him like a brother.
  • Sam, in his unnerved state, could not bring himself to share these
  • amiable sentiments. He was thinking bitterly that Webster might have had
  • the intelligence to warn him of bulldogs on the premises. It was just
  • the sort of woollen-headed thing fellows did, forgetting facts like
  • that. He scrambled stiffly to his feet and tried to pierce the darkness
  • that hemmed him in. He ignored Smith, who snuffled sportively about his
  • ankles, and made for the slightly less black oblong which he took to be
  • the door leading into the hall. He moved warily, but not warily enough
  • to prevent his cannoning into and almost upsetting a small table with a
  • vase on it. The table rocked and the vase jumped, and the first bit of
  • luck that had come to Sam that night was when he reached out at a
  • venture and caught it just as it was about to bound on to the carpet.
  • He stood there, shaking. The narrowness of the escape turned him cold.
  • If he had been an instant later, there would have been a crash loud
  • enough to wake a dozen sleeping houses. This sort of thing could not go
  • on. He must have light. It might be a risk; there might be a chance of
  • somebody upstairs seeing it and coming down to investigate; but it was a
  • risk that must be taken. He declined to go on stumbling about in this
  • darkness any longer. He groped his way with infinite care to the door,
  • on the wall adjoining which, he presumed, the electric-light switch
  • would be. It was nearly ten years since he had last been inside Windles,
  • and it never occurred to him that in this progressive age even a woman
  • like his Aunt Adeline, of whom he could believe almost anything, would
  • still be using candles and oil-lamps as a means of illumination. His
  • only doubt was whether the switch was where it was in most houses, near
  • the door.
  • It is odd to reflect that, as his searching fingers touched the knob, a
  • delicious feeling of relief came to Samuel Marlowe. This misguided young
  • man actually felt at that moment that his troubles were over. He
  • positively smiled as he placed a thumb on the knob and shoved.
  • He shoved strongly and sharply, and instantaneously there leaped at him
  • out of the darkness a blare of music which appeared to his disordered
  • mind quite solid. It seemed to wrap itself round him. It was all over
  • the place. In a single instant the world had become one vast bellow of
  • Tosti's "Good-bye."
  • How long he stood there, frozen, he did not know; nor can one say how
  • long he would have stood there had nothing further come to invite his
  • notice elsewhere. But, suddenly, drowning even the impromptu concert,
  • there came from somewhere upstairs the roar of a gun; and, when he heard
  • that, Sam's rigid limbs relaxed and a violent activity descended upon
  • him. He bounded out into the hall, looking to right and to left for a
  • hiding-place. One of the suits of armour which had been familiar to him
  • in his boyhood loomed up in front of him, and with the sight came the
  • recollection of how, when a mere child on his first visit to Windles,
  • playing hide and seek with his cousin Eustace, he had concealed himself
  • inside this very suit, and had not only baffled Eustace through a long
  • summer evening but had wound up by almost scaring him into a decline by
  • booing at him through the vizor of the helmet. Happy days, happy days!
  • He leaped at the suit of armour. Having grown since he was last inside
  • it, he found the helmet a tight fit, but he managed to get his head into
  • it at last, and the body of the thing was quite roomy.
  • "Thank heaven!" said Sam.
  • He was not comfortable, but comfort just then was not his primary need.
  • Smith the bulldog, well satisfied with the way the entertainment had
  • opened, sat down, wheezing slightly, to await developments.
  • § 5
  • He had not long to wait. In a few minutes the hall had filled up nicely.
  • There was Mr. Mortimer in his shirt-sleeves, Mr. Bennett in blue pyjamas
  • and a dressing-gown, Mrs. Hignett in a travelling costume, Jane Hubbard
  • with her elephant-gun, and Billie in a dinner dress. Smith welcomed them
  • all impartially.
  • Somebody lit a lamp, and Mrs. Hignett stared speechlessly at the mob.
  • "Mr. Bennett! Mr. Mortimer!"
  • "Mrs. Hignett! What are you doing here?"
  • Mrs. Hignett drew herself up stiffly.
  • "What an odd question, Mr. Mortimer! I am in my own house!"
  • "But you rented it to me for the summer. At least, your son did."
  • "Eustace let you Windles for the summer!" said Mrs. Hignett
  • incredulously.
  • Jane Hubbard returned from the drawing-room, where she had been
  • switching off the orchestrion.
  • "Let us talk all that over cosily to-morrow," she said. "The point now
  • is that there are burglars in the house."
  • "Burglars!" cried Mr. Bennett aghast. "I thought it was you playing that
  • infernal instrument, Mortimer."
  • "What on earth should I play it for at this time of night?" said Mr.
  • Mortimer irritably.
  • "It woke me up," said Mr. Bennett complainingly. "And I had had great
  • difficulty in dropping off to sleep. I was in considerable pain. I
  • believe I've caught the mumps from young Hignett."
  • "Nonsense! You're always imagining yourself ill," snapped Mr. Mortimer.
  • "My face hurts," persisted Mr. Bennett.
  • "You can't expect a face like that not to hurt," said Mr. Mortimer.
  • It appeared only too evident that the two old friends were again on the
  • verge of one of their distressing fallings-out; but Jane Hubbard
  • intervened once more. This practical-minded girl disliked the
  • introducing of side-issues into the conversation. She was there to talk
  • about burglars, and she intended to do so.
  • "For goodness sake stop it!" she said, almost petulantly for one usually
  • so superior to emotion. "There'll be lots of time for quarrelling
  • to-morrow. Just now we've got to catch these...."
  • "I'm not quarrelling," said Mr. Bennett.
  • "Yes, you are," said Mr. Mortimer.
  • "I'm not!"
  • "You are!"
  • "Don't argue!"
  • "I'm not arguing!"
  • "You are!"
  • "I'm not!"
  • Jane Hubbard had practically every noble quality which a woman can
  • possess with the exception of patience. A patient woman would have stood
  • by, shrinking from interrupting the dialogue. Jane Hubbard's robuster
  • course was to raise the elephant-gun, point it at the front door, and
  • pull the trigger.
  • "I thought that would stop you," she said complacently, as the echoes
  • died away and Mr. Bennett had finished leaping into the air. She
  • inserted a fresh cartridge, and sloped arms. "Now, the question is...."
  • "You made me bite my tongue!" said Mr. Bennett, deeply aggrieved.
  • "Serve you right!" said Jane placidly. "Now, the question is, have the
  • fellows got away or are they hiding somewhere in the house? I think
  • they're still in the house."
  • "The police!" exclaimed Mr. Bennett, forgetting his lacerated tongue and
  • his other grievances. "We must summon the police!"
  • "Obviously!" said Mrs. Hignett, withdrawing her fascinated gaze from the
  • ragged hole in the front door, the cost of repairing which she had been
  • mentally assessing. "We must send for the police at once."
  • "We don't really need them, you know," said Jane. "If you'll all go to
  • bed and just leave me to potter round with my gun...."
  • "And blow the whole house to pieces!" said Mrs. Hignett tartly. She had
  • begun to revise her original estimate of this girl. To her, Windles was
  • sacred, and anyone who went about shooting holes in it forfeited her
  • esteem.
  • "Shall I go for the police?" said Billie. "I could bring them back in
  • ten minutes in the car."
  • "Certainly not!" said Mr. Bennett. "My daughter gadding about all over
  • the countryside in an automobile at this time of night!"
  • "If you think I ought not to go alone, I could take Bream."
  • "Where _is_ Bream?" said Mr. Mortimer.
  • The odd fact that Bream was not among those present suddenly presented
  • itself to the company.
  • "Where can he be?" said Billie.
  • Jane Hubbard laughed the wholesome, indulgent laugh of one who is
  • broad-minded enough to see the humour of the situation even when the
  • joke is at her expense.
  • "What a silly girl I am!" she said. "I do believe that was Bream I shot
  • at upstairs. How foolish of me making a mistake like that!"
  • "You shot my only son!" cried Mr. Mortimer.
  • "I shot _at_ him," said Jane. "My belief is that I missed him. Though
  • how I came to do it beats me. I don't suppose I've missed a sitter like
  • that since I was a child in the nursery. Of course," she proceeded,
  • looking on the reasonable side, "the visibility wasn't good, but it's no
  • use saying I oughtn't at least to have winged him, because I ought." She
  • shook her head with a touch of self-reproach. "I shall get chaffed about
  • this if it comes out," she said regretfully.
  • "The poor boy must be in his room," said Mr. Mortimer.
  • "Under the bed, if you ask me," said Jane, blowing on the barrel of her
  • gun and polishing it with the side of her hand. "_He's_ all right! Leave
  • him alone, and the housemaid will sweep him up in the morning."
  • "Oh, he can't be!" cried Billie, revolted.
  • A girl of high spirit, it seemed to her repellent that the man she was
  • engaged to marry should be displaying such a craven spirit. At that
  • moment she despised and hated Bream Mortimer. I think she was wrong,
  • mind you. It is not my place to criticise the little group of people
  • whose simple annals I am relating--my position is merely that of a
  • reporter--; but personally I think highly of Bream's sturdy
  • common-sense. If somebody loosed off an elephant-gun at me in a dark
  • corridor, I would climb on to the roof and pull it up after me. Still,
  • rightly or wrongly, that was how Billie felt; and it flashed across her
  • mind that Samuel Marlowe, scoundrel though he was, would not have
  • behaved like this. And for a moment a certain wistfulness added itself
  • to the varied emotions then engaging her mind.
  • "I'll go and look, if you like," said Jane agreeably. "You amuse
  • yourselves somehow till I come back."
  • She ran easily up the stairs, three at a time. Mr. Mortimer turned to
  • Mr. Bennett.
  • "It's all very well your saying Wilhelmina mustn't go, but, if she
  • doesn't, how can we get the police? The house isn't on the 'phone, and
  • nobody else can drive the car."
  • "That's true," said Mr. Bennett, wavering.
  • "Of course, we could drop them a post-card first thing to-morrow
  • morning," said Mr. Mortimer in his nasty sarcastic way.
  • "I'm going," said Billie resolutely. It occurred to her, as it has
  • occurred to so many women before her, how helpless men are in a crisis.
  • The temporary withdrawal of Jane Hubbard had had the effect which the
  • removal of the rudder has on a boat. "It's the only thing to do. I shall
  • be back in no time."
  • She stepped firmly to the coat-rack, and began to put on her
  • motoring-cloak. And just then Jane Hubbard came downstairs, shepherding
  • before her a pale and glassy-eyed Bream.
  • "Right under the bed," she announced cheerfully, "making a noise like a
  • piece of fluff in order to deceive burglars."
  • Billie cast a scornful look at her fiancé. Absolutely unjustified, in my
  • opinion, but nevertheless she cast it. But it had no effect at all.
  • Terror had stunned Bream Mortimer's perceptions. His was what the
  • doctors call a penumbral mental condition.
  • "Bream," said Billie, "I want you to come in the car with me to fetch
  • the police."
  • "All right," said Bream.
  • "Get your coat."
  • "All right," said Bream.
  • "And cap."
  • "All right," said Bream.
  • He followed Billie in a docile manner out through the front door, and
  • they made their way to the garage at the back of the house, both
  • silent. The only difference between their respective silences was that
  • Billie's was thoughtful, while Bream's was just the silence of a man who
  • has unhitched his brain and is getting along as well as he can without
  • it.
  • In the hall they had left, Jane Hubbard once more took command of
  • affairs.
  • "Well, that's something done," she said, scratching Smith's broad back
  • with the muzzle of her weapon. "Something accomplished, something done,
  • has earned a night's repose. Not that we're going to get it yet. I think
  • those fellows are hiding somewhere, and we ought to search the house and
  • rout them out. It's a pity Smith isn't a bloodhound. He's a good
  • cake-hound, but as a watch-dog he doesn't finish in the first ten."
  • The cake-hound, charmed at the compliment, frisked about her feet like a
  • young elephant.
  • "The first thing to do," continued Jane, "is to go through the
  • ground-floor rooms...." She paused to strike a match against the suit of
  • armour nearest to her, a proceeding which elicited a sharp cry of
  • protest from Mrs. Hignett, and lit a cigarette. "I'll go first, as I've
  • got a gun...." She blew a cloud of smoke. "I shall want somebody with me
  • to carry a light, and...."
  • "Tchoo!"
  • "What?" said Jane.
  • "I didn't speak," said Mr. Mortimer. "Who am I to speak?" he went on
  • bitterly. "Who am I that it should be supposed that I have anything
  • sensible to suggest?"
  • "Somebody spoke," said Jane. "I...."
  • "Achoo!"
  • "Do you feel a draught, Mr. Bennett?" cried Jane sharply, wheeling round
  • on him.
  • "There _is_ a draught," began Mr. Bennett.
  • "Well, finish sneezing and I'll go on."
  • "I didn't sneeze!"
  • "Somebody sneezed."
  • "It seemed to come from just behind you," said Mrs. Hignett nervously.
  • "It couldn't have come from just behind me," said Jane, "because there
  • isn't anything behind me from which it could have...." She stopped
  • suddenly, in her eyes the light of understanding, on her face the set
  • expression which was wont to come to it on the eve of action. "Oh!" she
  • said in a different voice, a voice which was cold and tense and
  • sinister. "Oh, I see!" She raised her gun, and placed a muscular
  • forefinger on the trigger. "Come out of that!" she said. "Come out of
  • that suit of armour and let's have a look at you!"
  • "I can explain everything," said a muffled voice through the vizor of
  • the helmet. "I can--_achoo_!" The smoke of the cigarette tickled Sam's
  • nostrils again, and he suspended his remarks.
  • "I shall count three," said Jane Hubbard, "One--two--"
  • "I'm coming! I'm coming!" said Sam petulantly.
  • "You'd better!" said Jane.
  • "I can't get this dashed helmet off!"
  • "If you don't come quick, I'll blow it off."
  • Sam stepped out into the hall, a picturesque figure which combined the
  • costumes of two widely separated centuries. Modern as far as the neck,
  • he slipped back at that point to the Middle Ages.
  • "Hands up!" commanded Jane Hubbard.
  • "My hands _are_ up!" retorted Sam querulously, as he wrenched at his
  • unbecoming head-wear.
  • "Never mind trying to raise your hat," said Jane. "If you've lost the
  • combination, we'll dispense with the formalities. What we're anxious to
  • hear is what you're doing in the house at this time of night, and who
  • your pals are. Come along, my lad, make a clean breast of it and perhaps
  • you'll get off easier. Are you a gang?"
  • "Do I look like a gang?"
  • "If you ask me what you look like...."
  • "My name is Marlowe ... Samuel Marlowe...."
  • "Alias what?"
  • "Alias nothing! I say my name is Samuel Marlowe...."
  • An explosive roar burst from Mr. Bennett.
  • "The scoundrel! I know him! I forbade him the house, and...."
  • "And by what right did you forbid people my house, Mr. Bennett?" said
  • Mrs. Hignett with acerbity.
  • "I've rented the house, Mortimer and I rented it from your son...."
  • "Yes, yes, yes," said Jane Hubbard. "Never mind about that. So you know
  • this fellow, do you?"
  • "I don't know him!"
  • "You said you did."
  • "I refuse to know him!" went on Mr. Bennett. "I won't know him! I
  • decline to have anything to do with him!"
  • "But you identify him?"
  • "If he says he's Samuel Marlowe," assented Mr. Bennett grudgingly, "I
  • suppose he is. I can't imagine anybody saying he was Samuel Marlowe if
  • he didn't know it could be proved against him."
  • "_Are_ you my nephew Samuel?" said Mrs. Hignett.
  • "Yes," said Sam.
  • "Well, what are you doing in my house?"
  • "It's _my_ house," said Mr. Bennett, "for the summer, Henry Mortimer's
  • and mine. Isn't that right, Henry?"
  • "Dead right," said Mr. Mortimer.
  • "There!" said Mr. Bennett. "You hear? And when Henry Mortimer says a
  • thing, it's so. There's nobody's word I'd take before Henry Mortimer's."
  • "When Rufus Bennett makes an assertion," said Mr. Mortimer, highly
  • flattered by these kind words, "you can bank on it. Rufus Bennett's word
  • is his bond. Rufus Bennett is a white man!"
  • The two old friends, reconciled once more, clasped hands with a good
  • deal of feeling.
  • "I am not disputing Mr. Bennett's claim to belong to the Caucasian
  • race," said Mrs. Hignett testily. "I merely maintain that this house is
  • m...."
  • "Yes, yes, yes, yes!" interrupted Jane. "You can thresh all that out
  • some other time. The point is, if this fellow is your nephew, I don't
  • see what we can do. We'll have to let him go."
  • "I came to this house," said Sam, raising his vizor to facilitate
  • speech, "to make a social call...."
  • "At this hour of the night!" snapped Mrs. Hignett. "You always were an
  • inconsiderate boy, Samuel."
  • "I came to inquire after poor Eustace's mumps. I've only just heard that
  • the poor chap was ill."
  • "He's getting along quite well," said Jane, melting. "If I had known you
  • were so fond of Eustace...."
  • "All right, is he?" said Sam.
  • "Well, not quite all right, but he's going on very nicely."
  • "Fine!"
  • "Eustace and I are engaged, you know!"
  • "No, really? Splendid! I can't see you very distinctly--how those
  • Johnnies in the old days ever contrived to put up a scrap with things
  • like this on their heads beats me--but you sound a good sort. I hope
  • you'll be very happy."
  • "Thank you ever so much, Mr. Marlowe. I'm sure we shall."
  • "Eustace is one of the best."
  • "How nice of you to say so."
  • "All this," interrupted Mrs. Hignett, who had been a chaffing auditor of
  • this interchange of courtesies, "is beside the point. Why did you dance
  • in the hall, Samuel, and play the orchestrion?"
  • "Yes," said Mr. Bennett, reminded of his grievance, "waking people up."
  • "Scaring us all to death!" complained Mr. Mortimer.
  • "I remember you as a boy, Samuel," said Mrs. Hignett, "lamentably
  • lacking in consideration for others and concentrated only on your
  • selfish pleasures. You seem to have altered very little."
  • "Don't ballyrag the poor man," said Jane Hubbard. "Be human! Lend him a
  • sardine opener!"
  • "I shall do nothing of the sort," said Mrs. Hignett. "I never liked him
  • and I dislike him now. He has got himself into this trouble through his
  • own wrong-headedness."
  • "It's not his fault his head's the wrong size," said Jane.
  • "He must get himself out as best he can," said Mrs. Hignett.
  • "Very well," said Sam with bitter dignity. "Then I will not trespass
  • further on your hospitality, Aunt Adeline. I have no doubt the local
  • blacksmith will be able to get this damned thing off me. I shall go to
  • him now. I will let you have the helmet back by parcel-post at the
  • earliest opportunity. Good-night!" He walked coldly to the front door.
  • "And there are people," he remarked sardonically, "who say that blood is
  • thicker than water! I'll bet they never had any aunts!"
  • He tripped over the mat and withdrew.
  • § 6
  • Billie meanwhile, with Bream trotting docilely at her heels, had reached
  • the garage and started the car. Like all cars which have been spending a
  • considerable time in secluded inaction, it did not start readily. At
  • each application of Billie's foot on the self-starter, it emitted a
  • tinny and reproachful sound and then seemed to go to sleep again.
  • Eventually, however, the engines began to revolve and the machine moved
  • reluctantly out into the drive.
  • "The battery must be run down," said Billie.
  • "All right," said Bream.
  • Billie cast a glance of contempt at him out of the corner of her eyes.
  • She hardly knew why she had spoken to him except that, as all motorists
  • are aware, the impulse to say rude things about their battery is almost
  • irresistible. To a motorist the art of conversation consists in rapping
  • out scathing remarks either about the battery or the oiling-system.
  • Billie switched on the head-lights and turned the car down the dark
  • drive. She was feeling thoroughly upset. Her idealistic nature had
  • received a painful shock on the discovery of the yellow streak in Bream.
  • To call it a yellow streak was to understate the facts. It was a great
  • belt of saffron encircling his whole soul. That she, Wilhelmina
  • Bennett, who had gone through the world seeking a Galahad, should finish
  • her career as the wife of a man who hid under beds simply because people
  • shot at him with elephant guns was abhorrent to her. Why, Samuel Marlowe
  • would have perished rather than do such a thing. You might say what you
  • liked about Samuel Marlowe--and, of course, his habit of playing
  • practical jokes put him beyond the pale--but nobody could question his
  • courage. Look at the way he had dived overboard that time in the harbour
  • at New York! Billie found herself thinking wistfully about Samuel
  • Marlowe.
  • There are only a few makes of car in which you can think about anything
  • except the actual driving without stalling the engines, and Mr.
  • Bennett's Twin-Six Complex was not one of them. It stopped as if it had
  • been waiting for the signal.... The noise of the engine died away. The
  • wheels ceased to revolve. The car did everything except lie down. It was
  • a particularly pig-headed car and right from the start it had been
  • unable to see the sense in this midnight expedition. It seemed now to
  • have the idea that if it just lay low and did nothing, presently it
  • would be taken back to its cosy garage.
  • Billie trod on the self-starter. Nothing happened.
  • "You'll have to get down and crank her," she said curtly.
  • "All right," said Bream.
  • "Well, go on," said Billie impatiently.
  • "Eh?"
  • "Get out and crank her."
  • Bream emerged for an instant from his trance.
  • "All right," he said.
  • The art of cranking a car is one that is not given to all men. Some of
  • our greatest and wisest stand helpless before the task. It is a job
  • towards the consummation of which a noble soul and a fine brain help not
  • at all. A man may have all the other gifts and yet be unable to
  • accomplish a task which the fellow at the garage does with one quiet
  • flick of the wrist without even bothering to remove his chewing gum.
  • This being so, it was not only unkind but foolish of Billie to grow
  • impatient as Bream's repeated efforts failed of their object. It was
  • wrong of her to click her tongue, and certainly she ought not to have
  • told Bream that he was not fit to churn butter. But women are an
  • emotional sex and must be forgiven much in moments of mental stress.
  • "Give it a good sharp twist," she said.
  • "All right," said Bream.
  • "Here, let me do it," cried Billie.
  • She jumped down and snatched the thingummy from his hand. With bent
  • brows and set teeth she wrenched it round. The engine gave a faint
  • protesting mutter, like a dog that has been disturbed in its sleep, and
  • was still once more.
  • "May I help?"
  • It was not Bream who spoke but a strange voice--a sepulchral voice, the
  • sort of voice someone would have used in one of Edgar Allen Poe's
  • cheerful little tales if he had been buried alive and were speaking from
  • the family vault. Coming suddenly out of the night it affected Bream
  • painfully. He uttered a sharp exclamation and gave a bound which, if he
  • had been a Russian dancer would undoubtedly have caused the management
  • to raise his salary. He was in no frame of mind to bear up under sudden
  • sepulchral voices.
  • Billie, on the other hand, was pleased. The high-spirited girl was just
  • beginning to fear that she was unequal to the task which she had chided
  • Bream for being unable to perform and this was mortifying her.
  • "Oh, would you mind? Thank you so much. The self-starter has gone
  • wrong."
  • Into the glare of the headlights there stepped a strange figure,
  • strange, that is to say, in these tame modern times. In the Middle Ages
  • he would have excited no comment at all. Passers by would simply have
  • said to themselves, "Ah, another of those knights off after the
  • dragons!" and would have gone on their way with a civil greeting. But in
  • the present age it is always somewhat startling to see a helmeted head
  • pop up in front of your motor car. At any rate, it startled Bream. I
  • will go further. It gave Bream the shock of a lifetime. He had had
  • shocks already that night, but none to be compared with this. Or perhaps
  • it was that this shock, coming on top of those shocks, affected him more
  • disastrously than it would have done if it had been the first of the
  • series instead of the last. One may express the thing briefly by saying
  • that, as far as Bream was concerned, Sam's unconventional appearance put
  • the lid on it. He did not hesitate. He did not pause to make comments
  • or ask questions. With a single cat-like screech which took years off
  • the lives of the abruptly wakened birds roosting in the neighbouring
  • trees, he dashed away towards the house and, reaching his room, locked
  • the door and pushed the bed, the chest of drawers, two chairs, the towel
  • stand, and three pairs of boots against it.
  • Out on the drive Billie was staring at the man in armour who had now,
  • with a masterful wrench which informed the car right away that he would
  • stand no nonsense, set the engine going again.
  • "Why--why," she stammered, "why are you wearing that thing on your
  • head?"
  • "Because I can't get it off."
  • Hollow as the voice was, Billie recognised it.
  • "S--Mr. Marlowe!" she exclaimed.
  • "Get in," said Sam. He had seated himself at the steering wheel. "Where
  • can I take you?"
  • "Go away!" said Billie.
  • "Get in!"
  • "I don't want to talk to you."
  • "I want to talk to _you_! Get in!"
  • "I won't."
  • Sam bent over the side of the car, put his hands under her arms, lifted
  • her like a kitten, and deposited her on the seat beside him. Then
  • throwing in the clutch, he drove at an ever-increasing speed down the
  • drive and out into the silent road. Strange creatures of the night came
  • and went in the golden glow of the head-lights.
  • § 7
  • "Put me down," said Billie.
  • "You'd get hurt if I did, travelling at this pace."
  • "What are you going to do?"
  • "Drive about till you promise to marry me."
  • "You'll have to drive a long time."
  • "Right ho!" said Sam.
  • The car took a corner and purred down a lane. Billie reached out a hand
  • and grabbed at the steering wheel.
  • "Of course, if you _want_ to smash up in a ditch!" said Sam, righting
  • the car with a wrench.
  • "You're a brute!" said Billie.
  • "Caveman stuff," explained Sam, "I ought to have tried it before."
  • "I don't know what you expect to gain by this."
  • "That's all right," said Sam, "I know what I'm about."
  • "I'm glad to hear it."
  • "I thought you would be."
  • "I'm not going to talk to you."
  • "All right. Lean back and doze off. We've the whole night before us."
  • "What do you mean?" cried Billie, sitting up with a jerk.
  • "Have you ever been to Scotland?"
  • "What do you mean?"
  • "I thought we might push up there. We've got to go somewhere and, oddly
  • enough, I've never been to Scotland."
  • Billie regarded him blankly.
  • "Are you crazy?"
  • "I'm crazy about you. If you knew what I've gone through to-night for
  • your sake you'd be more sympathetic. I love you," said Sam, swerving to
  • avoid a rabbit. "And what's more, you know it."
  • "I don't care."
  • "You will!" said Sam confidently. "How about North Wales? I've heard
  • people speak well of North Wales. Shall we head for North Wales?"
  • "I'm engaged to Bream Mortimer."
  • "Oh no, that's all off," Sam assured her.
  • "It's not!"
  • "Right off!" said Sam firmly. "You could never bring yourself to marry a
  • man who dashed away like that and deserted you in your hour of need.
  • Why, for all he knew, I might have tried to murder you. And he ran away!
  • No, no, we eliminate Bream Mortimer once and for all. He won't do!"
  • This was so exactly what Billie was feeling herself that she could not
  • bring herself to dispute it.
  • "Anyway, I hate _you_!" she said, giving the conversation another turn.
  • "Why? In the name of goodness, why?"
  • "How dared you make a fool of me in your father's office that morning?"
  • "It was a sudden inspiration. I had to do something to make you think
  • well of me, and I thought it might meet the case if I saved you from a
  • lunatic with a pistol. It wasn't my fault that you found out."
  • "I shall never forgive you!"
  • "Why not Cornwall?" said Sam. "The Riviera of England! Let's go to
  • Cornwall. I beg your pardon. What were you saying?"
  • "I said I should never forgive you and I won't."
  • "Well, I hope you're fond of motoring," said Sam, "because we're going
  • on till you do."
  • "Very well! Go on, then!"
  • "I intend to. Of course, it's all right now while it's dark. But have
  • you considered what is going to happen when the sun gets up? We shall
  • have a sort of triumphal procession. How the small boys will laugh when
  • they see a man in a helmet go by in a car! I shan't notice them myself
  • because it's a little difficult to notice anything from inside this
  • thing, but I'm afraid it will be rather unpleasant for you.... I know
  • what we'll do. We'll go to London and drive up and down Piccadilly! That
  • will be fun!"
  • There was a long silence.
  • "Is my helmet on straight?" said Sam.
  • Billie made no reply. She was looking before her down the hedge-bordered
  • road. Always a girl of sudden impulses, she had just made a curious
  • discovery, to wit that she was enjoying herself. There was something so
  • novel and exhilarating about this midnight ride that imperceptibly her
  • dismay and resentment had ebbed away. She found herself struggling with
  • a desire to laugh.
  • "Lochinvar!" said Sam suddenly. "That's the name of the chap I've been
  • trying to think of! Did you ever read about Lochinvar? 'Young Lochinvar'
  • the poet calls him rather familiarly. He did just what I'm doing now,
  • and everybody thought very highly of him. I suppose in those days a
  • helmet was just an ordinary part of what the well-dressed man should
  • wear. Odd how fashions change!"
  • Till now dignity and wrath combined had kept Billie from making any
  • inquiries into a matter which had excited in her a quite painful
  • curiosity. In her new mood she resisted the impulse no longer.
  • "_Why_ are you wearing that thing?"
  • "I told you. Purely and simply because I can't get it off. You don't
  • suppose I'm trying to set a new style in gents' head-wear, do you?"
  • "But why did you ever put it on?"
  • "Well, it was this way. After I came out of the cupboard in the
  • drawing-room...."
  • "What!"
  • "Didn't I tell you about that? Oh yes, I was sitting in the cupboard in
  • the drawing-room from dinner-time onwards. After that I came out and
  • started cannoning about among Aunt Adeline's china, so I thought I'd
  • better switch the light on. Unfortunately I switched on some sort of
  • musical instrument instead. And then somebody started shooting. So, what
  • with one thing and another, I thought it would be best to hide
  • somewhere. I hid in one of the suits of armour in the hall."
  • "Were you inside there all the time we were...?"
  • "Yes. I say, that was funny about Bream, wasn't it? Getting under the
  • bed, I mean."
  • "Don't let's talk about Bream."
  • "That's the right spirit! I like to see it! All right, we won't. Let's
  • get back to the main issue. Will you marry me?"
  • "But why did you come to the house at all?"
  • "To see you."
  • "To see me! At that time of night?"
  • "Well, perhaps not actually to see you." Sam was a little perplexed for
  • a moment. Something told him that it would be injudicious to reveal his
  • true motive and thereby risk disturbing the harmony which he felt had
  • begun to exist between them. "To be near you! To be in the same house
  • with you!" he went on vehemently feeling that he had struck the right
  • note. "You don't know the anguish I went through after I read that
  • letter of yours. I was mad! I was ... well, to return to the point, will
  • you marry me?"
  • Billie sat looking straight before her. The car, now on the main road,
  • moved smoothly on.
  • "Will you marry me?"
  • Billie rested her hand on her chin and searched the darkness with
  • thoughtful eyes.
  • "Will you marry me?"
  • The car raced on.
  • "Will you marry me?" said Sam. "Will you marry me? Will you marry me?"
  • "Oh, don't talk like a parrot," cried Billie. "It reminds me of Bream."
  • "But will you?"
  • "Yes," said Billie.
  • Sam brought the car to a standstill with a jerk, probably very bad for
  • the tyres.
  • "Did you say 'yes'?"
  • "Yes!"
  • "Darling!" said Sam, leaning towards her. "Oh, curse this helmet!"
  • "Why?"
  • "Well, I rather wanted to kiss you and it hampers me."
  • "Let me try and get it off. Bend down!"
  • "Ouch!" said Sam.
  • "It's coming. There! How helpless men are!"
  • "We need a woman's tender care," said Sam depositing the helmet on the
  • floor of the car and rubbing his smarting ears. "Billie!"
  • "Sam!"
  • "You angel!"
  • "You're rather a darling after all," said Billie. "But you want keeping
  • in order," she added severely.
  • "You will do that when we're married. When we're married!" he repeated
  • luxuriously. "How splendid it sounds!"
  • "The only trouble is," said Billie, "father won't hear of it."
  • "No, he won't. Not till it is all over," said Sam.
  • He started the car again.
  • "What are you going to do?" said Billie. "Where are you going?"
  • "To London," said Sam. "It may be news to you but the old lawyer like
  • myself knows that, by going to Doctors' Commons or the Court of Arches
  • or somewhere or by routing the Archbishop of Canterbury out of bed or
  • something, you can get a special licence and be married almost before
  • you know where you are. My scheme--roughly--is to dig this special
  • licence out of whoever keeps such things, have a bit of breakfast, and
  • then get married at our leisure before lunch at a registrar's."
  • "Oh, not a registrar's!" said Billie.
  • "No?"
  • "I should hate a registrar's."
  • "Very well, angel. Just as you say. We'll go to a church. There are
  • millions of churches in London. I've seen them all over the place." He
  • mused for a moment. "Yes, you're quite right," he said. "A church is the
  • thing. It'll please Webster."
  • "Webster?"
  • "Yes, he's rather keen on the church bells never having rung out so
  • blithe a peal before. And we must consider Webster's feelings. After
  • all, he brought us together."
  • "Webster? How?"
  • "Oh, I'll tell you all about that some other time," said Sam. "Just for
  • the moment I want to sit quite still and think. Are you comfortable?
  • Fine! Then off we go."
  • The birds in the trees fringing the road stirred and twittered grumpily
  • as the noise of the engine disturbed their slumbers. But, if they had
  • only known it, they were in luck. At any rate, the worst had not
  • befallen them, for Sam was too happy to sing.
  • THE END
  • End of Project Gutenberg's The Girl on the Boat, by Pelham Grenville Wodehouse
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GIRL ON THE BOAT ***
  • ***** This file should be named 20717-8.txt or 20717-8.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/2/0/7/1/20717/
  • Produced by Martin Pettit and the Online Distributed
  • Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.